Selected quad for the lemma: spirit_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
spirit_n know_v scripture_n speak_v 7,222 5 4.9707 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A65863 The divinity of Christ and unity of the three that bear record in heaven with the blessed end and effects of Christ's appearance, coming in the flesh, suffering and sacrifice for sinners, confessed and vindicated, by his followers, called Quakers : and the principal matters in controversie, between them, and their present opposers (as Presbyterians, Independants, &c.) considered and resolved, according to the scriptures of truth, and more particularly to remove the aspersions ... cast upon the ... Quakers ... in several books, written by Tho. Vincent, Will. Madox, their railing book, stil'd The foundation, &c, Tho. Danson, his Synopsis, John Owen, his Declaration / which are here examin'd and compared by G.W. ... ; as also, a short review of several passages of Edward Stillingfleet's ... in his discourse of the sufferings of Christ's and sermon preached before the King, wherein he flatly contradicts the said opposers. Whitehead, George, 1636?-1723. 1669 (1669) Wing W1925; ESTC R19836 166,703 202

There are 28 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

christ_n nature_n divine_a and_o his_o soul_n divine_a which_o come_v out_o from_o god_n and_o where_o be_v his_o soul_n call_v humane_a come_v to_o the_o accidence_n again_o thou_o that_o profess_v thyself_o to_o be_v a_o great_a scholar_n tell_v we_o what_o humane_a signify_v 16_o thly_a thou_o speak_v of_o three_o person_n and_o a_o man_n be_v a_o person_n what_o do_v thou_o infer_v from_o this_o be_v god_n a_o man_n no_o he_o be_v a_o spirit_n i_o tell_v thou_o the_o scripture_n say_v so_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n a_o man_n it_o be_v call_v the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o christ_n be_v a_o man_n the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n so_o it_o seem_v the_o presbyterian_o can_v say_v little_a of_o himself_o but_o he_o have_v learn_v something_o of_o the_o learned_a wotton_n in_o pag._n the_o second_o but_o he_o do_v not_o tell_v we_o what_o he_o be_v whether_o a_o papist_n or_o a_o heathen_a 17_o thly_a thou_o say_v the_o soul_n be_v part_n of_o man_n nature_n where_o do_v the_o scripture_n thy_o rule_n say_v so_o for_o the_o scripture_n say_v god_n breathe_v into_o man_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n and_o man_n become_v a_o live_v soul_n 18_o thly_a thou_o say_v the_o word_n person_n can_v proper_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n why_o do_v the_o presbyterian_o rage_n so_o against_o the_o quaker_n it_o seem_v you_o can_v agree_v among_o yourselves_o because_o the_o quaker_n speak_v as_o the_o scripture_n do_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n and_o say_v the_o scripture_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o three_o person_n as_o thou_o thyself_o in_o thy_o three_o page_n say_v the_o word_n person_n can_v proper_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n see_v how_o this_o man_n be_v in_o confusion_n who_o say_v sometime_o there_o be_v three_o separate_a person_n and_o another_o while_n the_o word_n person_n can_v proper_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a chost_n but_o we_o do_v charge_n danson_n and_o his_o brethren_n to_o make_v this_o good_a by_o scripture_n in_o plain_a word_n for_o the_o scripture_n say_v the_o father_n be_v in_o the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o they_o so_o how_o can_v you_o say_v they_o be_v separate_v when_o they_o be_v one_o in_o another_o but_o it_o show_v you_o have_v little_a knowledge_n of_o god_n or_o scripture_n either_o 19_o thly_a the_o priest_n say_v concern_v that_o distinction_n in_o the_o godhead_n it_o can_v be_v apprehend_v by_o we_o and_o yet_o he_o will_v call_v they_o three_o separate_v person_n and_o a_o trinity_n and_o give_v they_o name_n which_o be_v not_o apprehend_v by_o you_o you_o may_v have_v be_v silent_a then_o in_o what_o you_o do_v not_o apprehend_v and_o yet_o you_o will_v lay_v principle_n down_o concern_v god_n the_o son_n and_o spirit_n which_o you_o do_v not_o apprehend_v yourselves_o but_o presume_v above_o what_o be_v write_v and_o so_o go_v contrary_a to_o your_o rule_n shall_v you_o not_o call_v the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n as_o the_o holy_a man_n do_v call_v they_o in_o the_o scripture_n 20_o thly_a in_o the_o four_o page_n thou_o say_v the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o spirit_n be_v say_v to_o be_v three_o yet_o but_o one_o god_n and_o yet_o thou_o say_v we_o do_v not_o know_v what_o to_o call_v those_o three_o but_o three_o person_n and_o there_o be_v that_o ascribe_v to_o they_o thou_o say_v property_n which_o agree_v not_o simple_o answ._n the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n agree_v but_o that_o which_o you_o do_v ascribe_v do_v not_o agree_v with_o scripture_n with_o they_o nor_o among_o yourselves_o about_o they_o and_o if_o you_o do_v not_o know_v what_o to_o call_v the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n but_o three_o person_n you_o may_v have_v hold_v your_o tongue_n then_o till_o you_o do_v know_v who_o call_v they_o and_o give_v they_o name_n contrary_a to_o scripture_n and_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n who_o call_v they_o father_n son_n and_o spitit_fw-la who_o be_v wise_a man_n than_o any_o of_o you_o 21_o thly_a and_o again_o in_o thy_o four_o page_n thou_o say_v three_o subsistent_n that_o be_v person_n though_o not_o strict_o yet_o proportionable_o or_o anological_o so_o call_v in_o the_o godhead_n people_n do_v you_o ever_o hear_v such_o a_o mash_n we_o do_v charge_v this_o presbyterian_a to_o make_v these_o word_n good_a by_o plain_a scripture_n viz._n three_o subsistent_n three_o person_n and_o analogical_o be_v this_o a_o scripture_n word_n people_n where_o do_v the_o apostle_n use_v any_o such_o dark_a word_n have_v thou_o not_o this_o word_n from_o the_o heathen_a well_o mark_v reader_n he_o say_v there_o be_v three_o person_n and_o three_o subsistent_n in_o the_o godhead_n and_o have_v not_o he_o make_v four_o here_o if_o there_o be_v three_o in_o the_o godhead_n he_o have_v make_v four_o for_o what_o be_v the_o godhead_n god_n be_v one_o and_o he_o have_v make_v three_o beside_o see_v pag._n 4._o of_o his_o book_n and_o so_o in_o the_o title_n of_o his_o book_n he_o speak_v of_o three_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n be_v there_o not_o four_o then_o and_o in_o the_o say_v four_o page_n he_o say_v he_o think_v he_o have_v answer_v all_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o antitrinitarian_n he_o do_v but_o think_v so_o it_o seem_v answ._n the_o scripture_n say_v 1_o joh._n 5.7_o that_o there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o but_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o they_o be_v separate_v nor_o distinct_a neither_o do_v call_v they_o person_n and_o thus_o we_o call_v they_o as_o the_o scripture_n call_v they_o father_n word_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o say_v they_o be_v separate_v nor_o distinct_a and_o we_o be_v not_o to_o presume_v above_o what_o be_v write_v we_o charge_v you_o presbyterian_o to_o give_v we_o print_v scripture_n for_o these_o follow_a word_n and_o let_v we_o see_v in_o what_o chapter_n and_o verse_n they_o be_v print_v come_v to_o the_o rule_n and_o do_v not_o presume_v above_o what_o be_v write_v concreet_fw-la abstract_n predicate_v the_o relative_n co-eternity_n co-essentiallity_a co-equallity_n communication_n of_o property_n co-essentiallities_a modallity_n suppossitallity_n incommunicable_a subsistance_n and_o hypostatical_a union_n come_v be_v these_o word_n speak_v in_o the_o rule_n the_o scripture_n let_v we_o see_v the_o chapter_n and_o verse_n that_o we_o may_v see_v where_o such_o term_n be_v speak_v of_o the_o father_n word_n and_o spirit_n which_o be_v one_o have_v you_o not_o they_o rather_o from_o your_o old_a logical_a and_o philosophical_a book_n and_o have_v not_o they_o be_v your_o rule_n for_o such_o word_n and_o not_o the_o scripture_n which_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n speak_v forth_o thou_o say_v in_o the_o 12_o page_n of_o thy_o book_n that_o we_o must_v not_o take_v man_n here_o for_o a_o person_n but_o a_o nature_n as_o you_o do_v god_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o before_o thou_o say_v that_o man_n be_v a_o person_n and_o so_o it_o be_v the_o nature_n that_o be_v a_o person_n and_o not_o the_o man_n nor_o god_n but_o thou_o have_v not_o define_v to_o we_o what_o a_o person_n be_v nor_o what_o the_o word_n person_n signify_v for_o all_o thy_o scholarship_n and_o thou_o say_v you_o mean_v no_o more_o than_o the_o name_n man_n to_o be_v attribute_v to_o peter_n james_n and_o john_n because_o the_o same_o human_a nature_n specifical_o agree_v unto_o they_o and_o so_o be_v the_o name_n god_n attribute_v to_o each_o person_n because_o the_o same_o divine_a nature_n subsist_v in_o each_o of_o they_o answ._n this_o be_v a_o dark_a thing_n to_o who_o will_v you_o liken_v i_o say_v god_n like_v peter_n james_n and_o john_n or_o like_v unto_o some_o corrupt_a person_n the_o saint_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n what_o do_v you_o say_v of_o they_o therefore_o and_o where_o do_v the_o scripture_n speak_v that_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n be_v so_o simple_a etc._n etc._n where_o learn_v you_o this_o word_n and_o where_o do_v the_o scripture_n use_v these_o word_n accident_n and_o integral_n of_o the_o godhead_n and_o this_o be_v your_o conception_n and_o notion_n of_o god_n and_o the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o 13_o page_n of_o danson_n book_n it_o be_v a_o conception_n and_o notion_n indeed_o for_o you_o say_v in_o the_o same_o 13_o page_n the_o conception_n or_o notion_n that_o we_o have_v of_o the_o father_n etc._n etc._n so_o it_o be_v but_o a_o notion_n and_o conception_n it_o seem_v that_o you_o have_v of_o the_o father_n and_o
demonstration_n then_o clear_a scripture_n sure_o whilst_o they_o can_v clear_v it_o and_o their_o distinction_n to_o themselves_o they_o be_v not_o like_a to_o clear_v they_o unto_o other_o but_o instead_o of_o scripture_n proof_n and_o demonstration_n we_o must_v either_o aquiesce_v with_o what_o their_o humane_a understanding_n can_v produce_v from_o aquinas_n wotton_n and_o aristotle_n etc._n etc._n or_o else_o we_o be_v like_a to_o be_v most_o bitter_o rail_v against_o by_o these_o our_o opposer_n t.u._n the_o three_o holies_n isa._n 6.1_o signify_v the_o three_o person_n contradiction_n the_o lord_n of_o host_n the_o one_o god_n pag._n 33._o contr._n j._n o._n contradict_v t._n v._n pag._n 45._o where_o he_o say_v that_o of_o isa._n 6.1_o 2._o three_o holy_a holy_a holy_a be_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n the_o whole_a earth_n be_v full_a of_o his_o glory_n apply_v unto_o the_o son_n joh._n 12.41_o 42._o obs._n how_o palpable_o one_o contradict_v another_o one_o say_v the_o three_o holye_n signify_v three_o person_n the_o other_o viz._n j.o._n say_v they_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o son_n who_o be_v but_o one._n this_o doctor_n owen_n shall_v correct_v his_o brother_n vincent_n t.u._n the_o son_n be_v eternal_a this_o generation_n must_v be_v eternal_a the_o personal_a property_n of_o the_o son_n be_v to_o be_v beget_v pag._n 36._o contr._n t._n v._o they_o be_v three_o distinct_a person_n from_o their_o distinct_a personal_a act_n contradiction_n again_o infiniteness_n be_v not_o applicable_a to_o the_o three_o distinct_a personallity_n pag._n 45._o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v god_n be_v infinite_a in_o power_n in_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n and_o eternal_a pag._n 30._o obs._n here_o manifest_a contradiction_n to_o himself_o show_v itself_o as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o either_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v eternal_a and_o yet_o not_o infinite_a or_o else_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v eternal_a be_v not_o a_o person_n distinct_a from_o god_n if_o a_o person_n be_v not_o infinite_a but_o yet_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v infinite_a in_o power_n wisdom_n goodness_n etc._n etc._n how_o ever_o these_o can_v be_v reconcile_v i_o leave_v to_o the_o ingenious_a to_o judge_v t._n v._o the_o father_n word_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v three_o subsistence_n pag._n 13.43_o not_o three_o substance_n pag._n 13._o they_o be_v three_o distinct_a subsistent_n pag._n 27._o a_o person_n be_v one_o individual_a subsistent_n rather_o t.d._n pag._n 2._o obs._n here_o they_o be_v now_o put_v to_o it_o what_o to_o call_v they_o be_v not_o three_o substance_n as_o t._n v._o say_v they_o call_v they_o three_o subsistence_n but_o now_o it_o must_v be_v subsistent_n rather_o but_o then_o in_o contradiction_n to_o both_o doctor_n owen_n say_v contradict_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o substance_n a_o personal_a subsistence_n what_o differ_v now_o between_o substance_n and_o subsistence_n t._n d._n what_o the_o scripture_n have_v reveal_v to_o we_o concern_v that_o distinction_n in_o the_o godhead_n can_v be_v apprehend_v under_o any_o other_o notion_n or_o resemblance_n which_o therefore_o we_o attribute_v to_o god_n pag._n 3._o we_o know_v not_o what_o to_o call_v those_o three_o but_o person_n contr._n t.d._n of_o the_o father_n word_n and_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n from_o 1_o joh._n 1.7_o now_o all_o witness_n proper_o so_o call_v be_v person_n pag._n 5._o then_o these_o witness_n must_v needs_o be_v distinct_a pag._n 7._o obs._n why_o be_v not_o that_o scripture_n produce_v all_o this_o while_n if_o there_o be_v such_o as_o reveal_v your_o distinction_n and_o notion_n of_o person_n in_o god_n and_o why_o do_v you_o not_o know_v what_o to_o call_v those_o three_o in_o heaven_n but_o person_n when_o t.d._n know_v how_o to_o call_v they_o witness_n what_o ignorance_n and_o contradiction_n be_v here_o t._n v._o from_o matth._n 3.16_o 17._o herein_o be_v a_o distinction_n of_o all_o the_o three_o person_n the_o son_n clothe_v in_o flesh_n the_o spirit_n in_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o dove_n the_o father_n in_o the_o voice_n etc._n etc._n pag._n 34._o contr._n w.m._n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v of_o a_o infinite_a nature_n be_v three_o person_n coessential_a coequal_a coeternal_a pag._n 29._o contr._n t.u._n the_o son_n be_v eternal_a his_o generation_n must_v be_v eternal_a the_o personal_a property_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v to_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n pag._n 36._o obs._n quest._n but_o be_v christ_n be_v clothe_v with_o flesh_n or_o the_o spirit_n appear_v in_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o dove_n or_o be_v send_v from_o eternity_n be_v these_o pertinent_a proof_n of_o their_o distinct_a personality_n which_o be_v reckon_v coeternal_a etc._n etc._n and_o whither_o or_o to_o who_o be_v the_o spirit_n send_v from_o eternity_n t.u._n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n which_o w.p._n do_v deny_v pag._n 32._o his_o denial_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n be_v plain_a pag._n 28._o contr._n t.u._n the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n be_v not_o deny_v by_o the_o adversary_n i_o have_v to_o do_v withal_o pag._n 28._o obs._n so_o here_o the_o same_o person_n that_o be_v accuse_v for_o deny_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o these_o latter_a word_n clear_v as_o not_o deny_v that_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n and_o to_o be_v sure_a he_o do_v confess_v the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n to_o be_v one_o be_v one_o divine_a substance_n and_o so_o one_o god_n t._n v._o the_o son_n be_v god_n coessential_a coequal_a coeternal_a with_o the_o father_n christ_n be_v infinite_a in_o power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n eternal_a pag._n 29_o 30._o t._n v._o in_o regard_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n the_o jew_n speak_v truth_n joh._n 8.57_o thou_o be_v not_o yet_o fifty_o year_n old_a as_o he_o be_v a_o son_n of_o abraham_n and_o bear_v many_o generation_n after_o he_o pag._n 31._o obs._n quest._n and_o be_v not_o he_o a_o person_n as_o he_o be_v a_o son_n of_o abraham_n not_o fifty_o year_n old_a if_o he_o be_v as_o i_o never_o hear_v any_o yet_o deny_v and_o your_o doctrine_n suppose_v a_o trinity_n of_o distinct_a person_n as_o be_v coeternal_a coequal_a etc._n etc._n do_v not_o this_o then_o render_v christ_n as_o a_o son_n of_o abraham_n to_o be_v a_o four_o person_n 2._o touch_v pardon_n and_o satisfaction_n t._n v._o that_o god_n never_o do_v nor_o will_v nor_o can_v pardon_v any_o sinner_n without_o satisfaction_n make_v to_o his_o offend_a justice_n for_o their_o sin_n because_o his_o holiness_n righteousness_n and_o truth_n oblige_v he_o to_o take_v vengeance_n upon_o all_o christ._n that_o have_v transgress_v his_o law_n pag._n 54._o t._n v._o christ_n the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n the_o second_o person_n of_o this_o glorious_a trinity_n the_o doctrine_n of_o satisfaction_n depend_v upon_o this_o person_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n prove_v to_o be_v god_n equal_a with_o the_o father_n pag._n 54._o contrad_n t._n d._n many_o of_o we_o do_v not_o affirm_v any_o impossibility_n of_o forgiveness_n without_o satisfaction_n and_o for_o my_o part_n though_o i_o know_v some_o worthy_a person_n do_v deny_v w._n p_o be_v affirmative_a yet_o i_o can_v join_v with_o they_o therein_o for_o to_o i_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o god_n be_v free_a in_o his_o determination_n what_o attribute_n he_o will_v manifest_v pag._n 17_o 18._o contrad_n t._n v._o god_n proclaim_v himself_o to_o be_v gracious_a and_o merciful_a pag._n 60._o he_o be_v exalt_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o mercy_n ready_a to_o forgive_v 1.37_o sinner_n pag._n 60_o 61._o god_n be_v at_o the_o charge_n of_o his_o own_o satisfaction_n job_n 33.24_o pag._n 62._o obs._n then_o it_o appear_v that_o god_n have_v power_n to_o show_v himself_o gracious_a he_o will_v not_o the_o death_n of_o sinner_n but_o rather_o their_o return_n and_o merciful_a ready_a to_o forgive_v sinner_n upon_o repentance_n he_o be_v at_o the_o charge_n of_o his_o own_o satisfaction_n as_o be_v say_v in_o give_v his_o eternal_a son_n who_o be_v confess_v to_o be_v god_n equal_a with_o the_o father_n all_o which_o in_o the_o best_a sense_n amount_v to_o this_o that_o god_n satisfy_v himself_o with_o his_o own_o gift_n and_o without_o perform_v his_o own_o will_n he_o can_v not_o be_v satisfy_v and_o who_o ever_o doubt_v or_o make_v question_n or_o controversy_n of_o that_o if_o it_o be_v so_o take_v but_o this_o prove_v not_o their_o unscriptural_a term_n phrase_n and_o notion_n of_o law_n suppose_v in_o the_o case_n nor_o yet_o that_o god_n take_v vengeance_n on_o christ_n instead_o of_o all_o transgressor_n and_o they_o to_o go_v free_a and_o yet_o still_o sin_n t._n v._o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o person_n that_o shall_v make_v satisfaction_n shall_v be_v a_o man_n former_a because_o none_o but_o a_o creature_n
then_o say_v suppose_v as_o a_o subsistent_n or_o person_n etc._n etc._n but_o which_o of_o these_o term_n it_o be_v this_o notionist_n have_v not_o declare_v to_o we_o in_o his_o 13_o page_n and_o this_o notionist_n go_v on_o in_o the_o say_v 13_o page_n and_o say_v nor_o can_v we_o say_v that_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o father_n as_o one_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n include_v the_o son_n nor_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o son_n as_o one_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n include_v the_o father_n reader_n do_v thou_o ever_o hear_v the_o like_a this_o be_v but_o a_o notion_n of_o the_o father_n and_o a_o notion_n of_o the_o son_n indeed_o and_o be_v these_o presbyterian_a priest_n like_v to_o interpret_v scripture_n with_o their_o notion_n conception_n and_o supposition_n no_o no._n no_o one_o know_v the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n and_o he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n reveal_v he_o nor_o none_o know_v the_o son_n but_o the_o father_n and_o to_o know_v god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n be_v life_n eternal_a and_o none_o can_v call_v he_o lord_n but_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o so_o this_o knowledge_n be_v beyond_o all_o your_o false_a conception_n supposition_n and_o notion_n and_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o saint_n body_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o it_o which_o holy_a ghost_n lead_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n and_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o person_n then_o have_v not_o the_o saint_n a_o person_n in_o their_o body_n and_o why_o do_v not_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o their_o body_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o a_o person_n according_a to_o your_o doctrine_n and_o rule_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o spirit_n and_o so_o let_v we_o see_v that_o scripture_n which_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o name_n of_o a_o person_n and_o he_o speak_v again_o in_o his_o 14_o page_n of_o three_o distinct_a person_n be_v one_o with_o the_o godhead_n now_o reader_n be_v not_o here_o four_o to_o wit_n three_o person_n and_o the_o godhead_n but_o reader_n we_o charge_v he_o to_o give_v we_o chapter_n and_o verse_n for_o this_o doctrine_n for_o we_o must_v order_v he_o with_o the_o rule_n and_o then_o he_o tell_v we_o of_o a_o notion_n of_o the_o father_n and_o include_v the_o son_n it_o be_v but_o his_o own_o notion_n for_o if_o he_o have_v know_v he_o he_o will_v have_v speak_v in_o a_o form_n of_o sound_a word_n whereby_o he_o may_v not_o have_v be_v reprove_v and_o again_o the_o presbyterian_a say_v the_o three_o person_n be_v distinct_a and_o the_o rule_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o they_o be_v one_o among_o themselves_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o that_o wherein_o they_o agree_v not_o simple_o answ._n reader_n take_v notice_n he_o say_v the_o father_n and_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n which_o he_o call_v three_o person_n do_v not_o agree_v simple_o be_v not_o this_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n what_o agreement_n be_v this_o which_o be_v not_o simple_o what!_o separate_a distinct_a person_n not_o agree_v simple_o come_v what_o be_v this_o agreement_n then_o if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o agree_v simple_o tell_v we_o what_o it_o be_v by_o chapter_n and_o verse_n thou_o say_v the_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n where_o do_v the_o scripture_n say_v that_o the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n do_v not_o agree_v simple_o do_v thou_o not_o say_v that_o god_n be_v so_o simple_a that_o he_o admit_v of_o no_o part_n what_o agreement_n be_v this_o if_o it_o be_v not_o simple_a what_o be_v it_o then_o tell_v we_o do_v thou_o not_o abuse_v the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n and_o scripture_n clear_a thyself_o and_o make_v this_o good_a that_o the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n do_v not_o agree_v simple_o if_o not_o simple_o then_o tell_v we_o how_o and_o give_v chapter_n and_o verse_n for_o it_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n or_o else_o acknowledge_v thyself_o to_o be_v of_o a_o sandy_a foundation_n see_v thou_o say_v a_o man_n be_v a_o person_n and_o god_n be_v a_o person_n and_o the_o scripture_n say_v god_n be_v a_o spirit_n and_o christ_n be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n be_v christ_n the_o image_n of_o the_o father_n as_o he_o be_v of_o the_o generation_n of_o abraham_n or_o david_n or_o adam_n or_o according_a to_o the_o spirit_n whether_o of_o these_o be_v he_o the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o father_n substance_n because_o thou_o call_v the_o father_n a_o person_n and_o the_o scripture_n say_v he_o suffer_v according_a to_o the_o flesh_n which_o he_o do_v not_o die_v as_o he_o be_v god_n and_o the_o scripture_n call_v he_o son_n of_o man_n and_o son_n of_o god_n and_o he_o be_v the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o father_n substance_n see_v the_o old_a translation_n and_o do_v thou_o not_o in_o thy_o 16_o page_n of_o thy_o synopsis_n bring_v the_o greek_a philosopher_n to_o prove_v the_o person_n yes_o how_o now_o presbyterian_a priest_n thou_o have_v run_v beside_o thy_o own_o directory_n and_o scripture_n both_o but_o the_o greek_a philosopher_n must_v be_v thy_o rule_n and_o leader_n sure_o people_n will_v not_o always_o have_v their_o eye_n blind_v by_o you_o christ_n be_v come_v to_o open_v they_o and_o in_o the_o 17_o page_n of_o his_o book_n the_o presbyterian_a say_v that_o hypostasis_fw-la must_v be_v render_v person_n or_o subsistent_a or_o some_o word_n to_o that_o effect_n he_o say_v so_o people_n see_v it_o must_v be_v some_o word_n but_o what_o it_o must_v be_v he_o know_v not_o and_o so_o in_o this_o manner_n they_o be_v give_v name_n to_o christ_n and_o god_n beside_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n we_o charge_v thou_o show_v we_o a_o verse_n in_o scripture_n that_o speak_v such_o language_n and_o where_o one_o word_n may_v be_v put_v for_o another_o by_o metalepsis_n and_o so_o leave_v people_n in_o doubt_n and_o question_n you_o be_v go_v beside_o your_o scripture_n and_o rule_n that_o at_o last_o people_n shall_v not_o know_v what_o to_o call_v god_n and_o christ._n so_o the_o presbyterian_o and_o independent_n must_v give_v we_o scripture_n for_o we_o will_v not_o be_v satisfy_v with_o your_o notion_n and_o whymsy_n and_o false_a conception_n which_o you_o have_v from_o aristotle_n and_o the_o greek_a philosopher_n and_o the_o papist_n and_o cardinal_n we_o do_v command_v you_o to_o give_v we_o scripture_n chapter_n and_o verse_n presbyterian_o and_o independent_n for_o these_o thing_n plain_o seeing_z you_o be_v of_o late_o perk_v up_o in_o a_o way_n of_o scold_v against_o we_o not_o like_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n patient_a and_o meek_a and_o apt_a to_o teach_v as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o your_o brother_n vincent_n book_n be_v that_o the_o language_n of_o a_o christian_a no_o he_o have_v declare_v what_o spirit_n you_o be_v of_o rabshecha_n spirit_n rail_v and_o speak_v evil_a of_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n he_o think_v to_o overcome_v by_o rail_a and_o complain_v not_o by_o love_n nay_o the_o lamb_n must_v have_v the_o victory_n whether_o or_o no_o be_v christ_n blood_n shed_v for_o all_o man_n and_o by_o it_o justify_v all_o man_n they_o live_v in_o their_o sin_n and_o not_o believe_v in_o it_o be_v they_o save_v by_o their_o say_n they_o believe_v in_o the_o blood_n and_o not_o believe_v in_o the_o light_n which_o christ_n command_v and_o become_v child_n of_o the_o light_n and_o they_o say_v they_o believe_v and_o yet_o not_o pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n and_o from_o sin_n that_o bring_v death_n and_o whether_o or_o no_o any_o be_v cleanse_v from_o all_o sin_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o such_o as_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n as_o in_o 1_o joh._n 1._o and_o so_o whither_o or_o no_o be_v those_o justify_v who_o believe_v not_o in_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n nor_o pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n nor_o walk_v not_o in_o the_o light_n whether_o or_o no_o be_v those_o justify_v by_o christ_n blood_n and_o have_v not_o the_o testimony_n of_o justification_n in_o they_o as_o in_o the_o account_n to_o god_n christ_n blood_n be_v shed_v for_o all_o man_n but_o for_o a_o man_n to_o come_v to_o partake_v of_o this_o justification_n be_v it_o not_o to_o feel_v the_o blood_n sprinkle_v the_o heart_n and_o conscience_n for_o the_o outward_a jew_n in_o the_o figure_n have_v blood_n sprinkle_v upon_o they_o in_o the_o outward_a offering_n come_v answer_v we_o by_o scripture_n do_v not_o daub_v up_o people_n with_o untempered_a mortar_n do_v you_o know_v the_o mortar_n that_o be_v temper_v whether_o or_o no_o be_v christ_n a_o offer_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o die_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n whether_o or_o no_o all_o the_o sinner_n and_o ungodly_a of_o the_o whole_a world_n
get_v some_o gain_n if_o you_o have_v bawdy-house_n but_o if_o you_o go_v to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n meeting_n than_o you_o will_v get_v no_o gain_n well_o might_n william_n pen_n say_v the_o priest_n pray_v whine_o and_o look_v pale_a when_o you_o have_v lose_v your_o easter-reckoning_n and_o midsummer-dues_a be_v not_o the_o great_a basin_n hold_v at_o door_n what_o this_o be_v a_o new_a way_n be_v it_o whether_o bring_v in_o more_o profit_n to_o the_o priest_n mouth_n tithe_n and_o easter-reckoning_n and_o midsummer-dues_a or_o the_o great_a platter_n now_o do_v you_o not_o cry_v up_o bawdy-house_n or_o any_o way_n so_o that_o you_o can_v get_v gain_n i_o wonder_v for_o all_o this_o idle_a time_n you_o have_v have_v that_o you_o can_v not_o answer_n samuel_n fisher_n book_n among_o you_o for_o it_o stand_v upon_o your_o head_n he_o have_v answer_v all_o your_o principle_n and_o more_o than_o you_o have_v question_v have_v you_o forget_v your_o regiment_n of_o fight_a priest_n and_o how_o the_o presbyterian_o and_o priest_n beat_v the_o quaker_n read_v the_o book_n of_o fight_a priest_n how_o they_o tear_v the_o clothes_n off_o lass_n and_o young_a man_n and_o draw_v their_o rapier_n upon_o they_o and_o break_v their_o head_n and_o shed_v their_o blood_n and_o yet_o you_o must_v have_v the_o title_n of_o gospeler_n but_o more_o like_a unto_o rage_a heathen_n who_o imagine_v vain_a thing_n against_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o his_o people_n but_o the_o lord_n have_v break_v your_o horn_n the_o wild_a beast_n and_o put_v he_o under_o a_o chain_n so_o we_o look_v you_o will_v have_v give_v out_o a_o book_n of_o repentance_n for_o all_o your_o wicked_a action_n in_o the_o other_o power_n day_n and_o show_v forth_o a_o work_n of_o reformation_n do_v you_o not_o remember_v how_o you_o come_v with_o your_o drum_n and_o fiddle_n independent_n and_o presbyterian_o be_v it_o not_o clear_v here_o to_o all_o people_n that_o you_o deny_v god_n and_o christ_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n in_o your_o say_n that_o god_n have_v ordain_v some_o person_n to_o be_v damn_v when_o god_n say_v ezek._n 18.32_o he_o desire_v not_o the_o death_n of_o he_o that_o die_v and_o in_o isa._n 1.18_o it_o be_v say_v come_v let_v we_o reason_n together_o say_v the_o lord_n though_o your_o sin_n be_v as_o scarlet_a they_o shall_v be_v as_o white_a as_o snow_n and_o though_o they_o be_v red_a like_o crimson_a they_o shall_v be_v like_o wool_n and_o vers_n 16._o wash_v you_o make_v you_o clean_o put_v away_o the_o evil_a of_o your_o do_n from_o before_o my_o eye_n cease_v to_o do_v evil_a learn_v to_o do_v well_o and_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o 1_o tim._n 2.4_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o christ_n have_v give_v himself_o a_o ransom_n for_o all_o to_o be_v testify_v in_o due_a time_n and_o christ_n taste_v death_n for_o every_o man_n and_o be_v a_o propitiation_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o his_o blood_n be_v shed_v for_o all_o man_n and_o the_o gospel_n be_v to_o be_v preach_v to_o every_o creature_n and_o go_v and_o teach_v all_o nation_n matth._n 28._o now_o be_v it_o not_o clear_a that_o these_o presbyterian_o and_o independent_n who_o say_v that_o christ_n die_v but_o for_o some_o and_o offer_v but_o for_o some_o have_v they_o not_o deny_v christ_n blood_n for_o all_o man_n and_o his_o propitiation_n for_o all_o man_n and_o in_o do_v this_o they_o deny_v god_n will_n who_o will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o will_v they_o not_o lay_v the_o fault_n in_o god_n when_o the_o fault_n be_v in_o man_n by_o not_o believe_v and_o do_v they_o not_o make_v sect_n here_o in_o say_v he_o die_v but_o for_o some_o and_o will_v have_v but_o some_o to_o be_v save_v and_o he_o shed_v his_o blood_n but_o for_o some_o and_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o all_o be_v go_v astray_o both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n that_o he_o may_v have_v mercy_n upon_o all_o see_v rom._n 11.32_o and_o they_o say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v mercy_n upon_o all_o and_o do_v not_o you_o say_v that_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n upon_o some_o contradict_v the_o apostle_n and_o the_o rule_n for_o the_o scripture_n say_v christ_n enlighten_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o you_o say_v that_o he_o enlighten_v but_o some_o and_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o bring_v salvation_n have_v appear_v to_o all_o man_n and_o you_o say_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o bring_v salvation_n have_v appear_v but_o to_o some_o and_o all_o have_v not_o receive_v grace_n and_o the_o scripture_n say_v god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n into_o the_o world_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o do_v not_o you_o say_v he_o give_v he_o but_o for_o a_o few_o and_o love_v some_o of_o the_o world_n and_o do_v not_o you_o contradict_v scripture_n and_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n word_n and_o so_o be_v find_v in_o a_o erronicus_n principled_a spirit_n and_o so_o be_v it_o not_o clear_a that_o you_o deny_v christ_n who_o die_v without_o the_o gate_n at_o jerusalem_n who_o blood_n be_v shed_v for_o all_o man_n and_o deny_v the_o propitiation_n and_o atonement_n for_o all_o man_n and_o deny_v jacob_n prophecy_n who_o prophesy_v that_o the_o gather_n of_o all_o nation_n shall_v be_v to_o shilo_n and_o you_o say_v that_o some_o of_o the_o nation_n shall_v be_v save_v not_o all_o and_o here_o do_v you_o not_o deny_v the_o very_a scripture_n itself_o and_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n word_n and_o deny_v their_o doctrine_n and_o also_o be_v it_o not_o clear_a that_o you_o deny_v the_o true_a faith_n of_o god_n elect_n that_o the_o just_a life_n by_o and_o be_v not_o faith_n the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o do_v you_o not_o say_v that_o faith_n be_v not_o perfect_a do_v not_o you_o hold_v justification_n without_o and_o that_o it_o be_v without_o man_n and_o woman_n and_o do_v not_o faith_n heal_v see_v matth._n mark_n luke_n and_o the_o acts._n and_o be_v not_o the_o church_n establish_v in_o the_o faith_n act_n 16.5_o be_v it_o not_o call_v the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n rom._n 4.13_o and_o how_o that_o the_o saint_n be_v heir_n by_o faith_n and_o it_o be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o faith_n rom._n 10._o and_o it_o be_v call_v the_o spirit_n of_o faith_n 2_o cor._n 4.13_o gal_n 5.6_o and_o faith_n that_o work_v by_o love_n so_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o you_o be_v out_o of_o this_o faith_n that_o live_v in_o malice_n and_o hatred_n and_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n eph._n 4._o and_o the_o unity_n be_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o faith_n give_v victory_n over_o that_o which_o have_v separate_v from_o god_n and_o faith_n be_v the_o shield_n and_o the_o saint_n be_v to_o strive_v together_o for_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n 1_o thes._n 3._o remember_v your_o work_n of_o faith_n and_o put_v on_o the_o breastplate_n of_o faith_n 1_o thes._n 5.8_o the_o work_n of_o faith_n with_o power_n and_o hold_v faith_n and_o a_o good_a conscience_n 1_o tim._n 5.19_o and_o have_v not_o you_o make_v shipwreck_n of_o this_o faith_n in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o god_n to_o say_v christ_n blood_n be_v not_o shed_v for_o all_o man_n and_o god_n will_v not_o have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o have_v ordain_v some_o to_o damnation_n be_v not_o faith_n call_v a_o mystery_n 1_o tim._n 3.9_o be_v not_o the_o saint_n to_o fight_v the_o good_a fight_n of_o faith_n 1_o tim._n 6.12_o be_v not_o you_o among_o they_o that_o have_v err_v concern_v the_o faith_n and_o have_v overthrow_v the_o faith_n of_o some_o in_o not_o believe_v the_o one_o offer_v once_o for_o all_o his_o blood_n for_o all_o his_o death_n for_o all_o and_o so_o be_v become_v reprobate_n concern_v the_o common_a faith_n tit._n 1.4_o and_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n who_o be_v the_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o you_o make_v you_o at_o savoy_n in_o eleven_o day_n time_n in_o oliver_n day_n and_o the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o his_o faith_n heb._n 2._o and_o heart_n purify_v by_o faith_n act_v 15._o and_o sanctify_v by_o faith_n act_v 26._o rom._n 3._o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n so_o it_o be_v clear_a reader_n that_o faith_n justify_v sanctify_v and_o faith_n purify_v rhe_n heart_n and_o so_o this_o
without_o any_o just_a cause_n both_o then_o and_o when_o we_o be_v afterward_o at_o their_o meeting_n to_o clear_v ourselves_o from_o t._n v'_v and_o w._n m._n their_o malicious_a and_o slanderous_a accusation_n of_o blasphemy_n yea_o even_o in_o the_o time_n when_o i_o sit_v silent_a among_o they_o some_o of_o their_o hearer_n both_o man_n and_o woman_n will_v be_v rail_v and_o clamour_v against_o i_o when_o i_o give_v they_o no_o seem_n much_o less_o real_a occasion_n at_o all_o i_o be_v silent_a so_o that_o of_o all_o the_o assembly_n i_o have_v be_v in_o i_o never_o meet_v with_o any_o that_o show_v less_o christianity_n civility_n or_o good_a education_n and_o whereas_o t._n v._o be_v neither_o so_o honest_a nor_o yet_o so_o ingenious_a as_o to_o acknowledge_v his_o apparent_a and_o palpable_a contradiction_n in_o his_o sermon_n set_v down_o and_o observe_v by_o w._n p._n but_o rather_o will_v outface_v we_o and_o the_o reader_n as_o though_o they_o be_v no_o contradiction_n let_v the_o reader_n therefore_o take_v a_o short_a review_n of_o they_o as_o first_o contradiction_n that_o a_o person_n that_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n overcome_v the_o world_n and_o yet_o the_o victory_n in_o this_o life_n incomplete_a be_v not_o here_o a_o evident_a inconsistency_n and_o contradiction_n be_v his_o doctrine_n and_o ignorance_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o the_o saint_n victory_n which_o be_v their_o faith_n 1_o joh._n 5.4_o for_o if_o he_o have_v always_o enemy_n or_o sin_n unsubdued_a in_o this_o life_n how_o be_v they_o overcome_v and_o victory_n obtain_v or_o be_v there_o a_o victory_n over_o enemy_n and_o they_o not_o overcome_v what_o false_a gloss_n will_v he_o set_v upon_o his_o contradiction_n and_o his_o instance_n of_o the_o canaanite_n among_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n be_v like_o thorn_n do_v they_o mischief_n this_o be_v when_o they_o do_v not_o as_o god_n command_v drive_v they_o out_o before_o they_o which_o be_v no_o proof_n in_o this_o case_n to_o he_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n for_o the_o wicked_a one_o can_v touch_v he_o much_o less_o mischief_n he_o and_o t._n v._o his_o say_n that_o such_o as_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o cast_v off_o the_o old_a man_n and_o know_v a_o change_n altogether_o new_a and_o yet_o worldly_a lust_n can_v be_v extirpate_v out_o of_o god_n people_n in_o this_o world_n do_v but_o mark_v his_o plain_a contradiction_n again_o here_o and_o how_o do_v he_o clear_v himself_o by_o question_n may_v not_o have_v not_o worldly_a lust_n a_o be_v and_o some_o power_n to_o oppose_v in_o god_n people_n where_o they_o have_v lose_v their_o rule_n but_o how_o then_o be_v they_o in_o christ_n and_o have_v cast_v off_o the_o old_a man_n and_o know_v a_o change_n altogether_o new_a what_o must_v the_o old_a worldly_a lust_n still_o remain_v unextirpate_v in_o this_o life_n in_o christ_n where_o then_o be_v the_o newness_n of_o life_n altogether_o or_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o its_o teach_n to_o deny_v those_o thing_n obey_v and_o how_o then_o be_v such_o as_o be_v in_o christ_n new_a creature_n or_o how_o have_v they_o that_o be_v he_o crucify_v the_o flesh_n with_o the_o affection_n and_o lust_n which_o to_o accuse_v all_o god_n people_n of_o worldly_a lust_n all_o their_o life_n time_n what_o a_o abuse_n be_v it_o to_o they_o do_v not_o paul_n see_v and_o attain_v a_o state_n beyond_o that_o wherein_o he_o have_v see_v a_o law_n in_o his_o member_n war_a and_o lead_v he_o captive_a etc._n etc._n do_v not_o he_o see_v the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o christ_n to_o make_v he_o free_a from_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n &_o death_n when_o through_o christ_n he_o become_v more_o than_o a_o conqueror_n and_o can_v he_o be_v in_o all_o those_o state_n he_o mention_v to_o the_o roman_n then_o at_o one_o and_o the_o same_o time_n to_o wit_n carnal_a sell_v under_o sin_n lead_v captive_a have_v a_o will_v to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v good_a but_o know_v not_o how_o and_o also_o to_o be_v free_v from_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o christ_n jesus_n one_o dead_a to_o sin_n that_o can_v not_o live_v any_o long_a therein_o and_o more_o than_o a_o conqueror_n etc._n etc._n can_v these_o state_n be_v consistent_a or_o all_o his_o at_o one_o and_o the_o same_o time_n viz._n to_o be_v carnal_a wretched_a a_o captive_n ignorant_a of_o his_o duty_n and_o yet_o a_o deliver_v free_v spiritual_a man_n more_o than_o a_o conqueror_n and_o a_o apostle_n that_o then_o know_v how_o to_o write_v that_o epistle_n instruct_v other_o and_o preach_v to_o they_o in_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o these_o latter_a his_o attainment_n at_o that_o time_n wherein_o he_o show_v his_o deliverance_n from_o the_o former_a bondage_n servitude_n and_o thraldom_n under_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o law_n and_o body_n of_o it_o which_o be_v not_o to_o remain_v always_o but_o to_o be_v end_v abollish_v and_o destroy_v by_o the_o power_n and_o operation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o they_o that_o believe_v for_o if_o christ_n be_v in_o you_o the_o body_n be_v dead_a because_o of_o sin_n but_o the_o spirit_n be_v life_n because_o of_o righteousness_n and_o where_o the_o old_a man_n be_v crucify_v with_o he_o it_o be_v to_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o body_n of_o sin_n that_o henceforth_o sin_n shall_v not_o be_v serve_v rom._n 6.6_o chap._n 8.10_o and_o paul_n speak_v to_o the_o roman_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n because_o of_o the_o infirmity_n of_o their_o flesh_n ch_n 6.19_o and_o he_o so_o condescend_v to_o speak_v of_o several_a state_n that_o he_o have_v pass_v through_o be_v not_o to_o encourage_v any_o to_o plead_v or_o contend_v for_o sin_n term_n of_o life_n as_o most_o injurious_o his_o intention_n be_v pervert_v by_o these_o minister_n of_o sin_n and_o antichrist_n whilst_o that_o he_o also_o show_v his_o deliverance_n and_o conquest_n but_o rather_o that_o man_n shall_v believe_v as_o he_o have_v do_v in_o order_n to_o their_o obtain_n perfect_a victory_n and_o conquest_n by_o the_o same_o power_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o which_o true_a believer_n confide_v and_o trust_v against_o all_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n temptation_n and_o evil_a motion_n know_v that_o christ_n power_n be_v strong_a than_o the_o devil_n power_n and_o it_o be_v for_o christ_n power_n and_o work_n that_o we_o contend_v both_o against_o the_o devil_n his_o work_n and_o messenger_n who_o dispute_n and_o contend_v for_o sin_n term_n of_o life_n which_o be_v their_o great_a injury_n both_o against_o christ_n his_o work_n and_o people_n and_o that_o which_o have_v great_o strengthen_v the_o hand_n of_o evil-doer_n and_o t.u._n his_o tell_n that_o sin_n may_v tyrannize_v over_o believer_n and_o yet_o not_o have_v dominion_n but_o be_v in_o captivity_n in_o chain_n who_o be_v so_o blind_a that_o can_v see_v his_o contradiction_n herein_o and_o his_o silly_a come_v off_o in_o instance_v that_o a_o slave_n in_o chain_n may_v sometime_o break_v loose_a and_o tyrannize_v what_o then_o be_v this_o captivity_n and_o these_o chain_n under_o which_o the_o sin_n be_v hold_v and_o how_o do_v it_o tyrannize_v and_o yet_o not_o have_v dominion_n what_o silly_a work_n be_v this_o but_o his_o say_n you_o must_v kill_v or_o be_v kill_v either_o you_o must_v overcome_v the_o world_n or_o the_o world_n you_o what_o must_v they_o kill_v but_o sin_n and_o worldly_a lust_n sure_o this_o be_v further_a than_o a_o incomplete_a victory_n and_o further_o than_o a_o enemy_n break_v loose_a if_o he_o be_v kill_v for_o if_o he_o be_v slay_v he_o have_v neither_o power_n to_o break_v loose_a lead_v captive_a and_o much_o less_o to_o tyrannize_v over_o believer_n it_o be_v strange_a how_o t.u._n can_v so_o far_o shut_v his_o eye_n or_o endeavour_v to_o blind_v other_o as_o to_o seek_v to_o gloss_n over_o these_o notorious_a contradiction_n as_o if_o they_o be_v in_o unity_n and_o then_o light_o to_o say_v can_v you_o forbear_v smile_v at_o the_o man_n he_o call_v these_o contradiction_n how_o shallow_a and_o ridiculous_a have_v he_o render_v himself_o herein_o chap._n ii_o in_o answer_n to_o w._n madox_n together_o with_o several_a contradiction_n between_o he_o and_o his_o brother_n t._n vincent_n and_o their_o absurdity_n manifest_v and_o detect_v which_o show_v also_o their_o ignorance_n of_o the_o true_a and_o living_n god_n etc._n etc._n madox_n these_o man_n have_v prostitute_v themselves_o to_o a_o idol_n of_o their_o own_o brain_n the_o light_n within_o which_o be_v their_o christ_n &_o saviour_n count_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o true_a god_n a_o strange_a doctrine_n answ._n the_o light_n within_o which_o we_o do_v own_o witness_v
to_o and_o obey_v be_v the_o light_n of_o christ_n which_o witness_v against_o all_o sin_n against_o all_o idolatry_n and_o unrighteousness_n and_o lead_v we_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o true_a god_n which_o we_o receive_v in_o the_o light_n and_o not_o man_n tradition_n and_o corrupt_a doctrine_n and_o invention_n whereby_o people_n have_v be_v keep_v in_o the_o dark_a by_o such_o perverse_a and_o prejudice_v spirit_n as_o thus_o blasphemous_o deem_v the_o light_n within_o a_o idol_n of_o our_o own_o brain_n whereas_o it_o be_v the_o light_n and_o life_n of_o the_o eternal_a word_n which_o enlighten_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n that_o we_o testify_v unto_o against_o all_o the_o dark_a opposer_n and_o gainsayers_a who_o way_n be_v dark_a and_o crooked_a as_o thy_o w._n m._n be_v who_o thus_o false_o and_o blasphemous_o have_v represent_v the_o light_n within_o like_o those_o that_o put_v light_a for_o darkness_n and_o darkness_n for_o light_n and_o now_o let_v the_o reader_n judge_n whether_o such_o dark_a envious_a person_n as_o thou_o herein_o have_v show_v they_o self_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v judge_n in_o these_o thing_n of_o controversy_n about_o such_o high_a matter_n touch_v the_o three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n viz._n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n when_o thou_o in_o thy_o earthly_a sensual_a wisdom_n never_o come_v there_o neither_o can_v thou_o till_o thou_o count_v it_o loss_n unto_o thou_o and_o come_v to_o loose_v it_o that_o the_o babe_n state_n that_o enter_v the_o kingdom_n be_v know_v in_o which_o the_o light_n and_o life_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v manifest_a which_o discover_v the_o hide_a thing_n of_o darkness_n and_o reveal_v the_o mystery_n of_o god_n salvation_n to_o they_o that_o obey_v it_o but_o not_o to_o such_o as_o count_v it_o a_o idol_n and_o now_o what_o may_v we_o expect_v but_o darkness_n from_o such_o a_o one_o as_o call_v the_o light_n within_o a_o idol_n and_o they_o that_o look_v into_o thy_o follow_a work_n against_o we_o may_v see_v the_o gross_a darkness_n thereof_o yea_o darkness_n that_o may_v be_v feel_v w._n m._n by_o their_o three_o person_n you_o mean_v the_o three_o increated_a person_n of_o the_o ever_o bless_a trinity_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n three_o increated_a person_n be_v thy_o own_o word_n and_o term_n but_o the_o father_n word_n and_o spirit_n we_o real_o own_o and_o bear_v witness_n to_o both_o as_o mention_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o as_o know_v the_o absolute_a testimony_n and_o eternal_a power_n thereof_o manifest_v where_o that_o which_o may_v be_v know_v of_o god_n be_v manifest_a even_o within_o both_o in_o create_v beget_v and_o quicken_a we_o again_o to_o god_n out_o of_o death_n and_o darkness_n and_o these_o three_o which_o be_v one_o which_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n to_o wit_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n as_o i_o can_v not_o own_o the_o title_n of_o three_o distinct_a and_o separate_a person_n to_o be_v put_v upon_o they_o as_o thy_o brother_n erroneous_o do_v be_v not_o scripture-language_n so_o it_o be_v never_o my_o intent_n nor_o principle_n to_o compare_v they_o to_o three_o apostle_n or_o finite_a creature_n as_o most_o false_o and_o injurious_o thou_o accuse_v i_o but_o to_o endeavour_v to_o make_v the_o people_n understand_v both_o the_o grosseness_n and_o falseness_n of_o tho._n danson_n and_o tho._n vincent_n principle_n of_o three_o distinct_a separate_a person_n in_o the_o deity_n you_o name_v each_o person_n god_n which_o render_v they_o three_o god_n whilst_o but_o one_o god_n by_o show_v the_o consequence_n of_o this_o your_o principle_n after_o i_o have_v from_o scripture_n show_v how_o inseparable_a the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v and_o the_o oneness_n of_o the_o father_n word_n and_o the_o spirit_n but_o if_o i_o have_v simple_o compare_v they_o to_o three_o apostle_n who_o be_v distinct_a and_o separate_a person_n than_o have_v i_o own_v your_o own_o term_n and_o principle_n and_o then_o the_o controversy_n have_v fall_v between_o we_o but_o instead_o thereof_o i_o be_o accuse_v for_o oppose_v your_o doctrine_n of_o distinct_a separate_a person_n and_o thus_o you_o confound_v yourselves_o in_o wrong_v of_o i_o for_o be_v not_o the_o three_o apostle_n paul_n peter_n and_o john_n three_o distinct_a separate_a person_n do_v i_o ever_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v how_o like_a then_o to_o finite_a creature_n do_v your_o own_o doctrine_n render_v the_o eternal_a god_n his_o word_n &_o spirit_n which_o to_o show_v be_v my_o end_n in_o instance_v three_o apostle_n for_o we_o never_o believe_v the_o eternal_a god_n to_o be_v like_a to_o corruptible_a man_n since_o we_o know_v any_o thing_n of_o his_o divine_a power_n but_o t._n danson_n in_o his_o synopsis_n pag._n 12._o plain_o instance_v three_o apostle_n peter_n james_n and_o john_n as_o also_o his_o instance_n of_o david_n and_o solomon_n for_o their_o trinity_n or_o three_o person_n in_o one_o nature_n be_v not_o this_o a_o instance_n of_o finite_a creature_n and_o such_o a_o indignity_n put_v upon_o god_n as_o i_o never_o intend_v how_o can_v such_o man_n but_o blush_n for_o charge_v that_o on_o other_o which_o so_o evident_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o themselves_o madox_n we_o call_v the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n three_o person_n or_o he_o be_v according_a as_o they_o be_v hold_v forth_o in_o the_o scripture_n answ._n nay_o have_v you_o stand_v to_o scripture-language_n there_o have_v not_o be_v any_o controversy_n between_o we_o therein_o but_o it_o will_v not_o satisfy_v you_o but_o you_o must_v obtrude_v your_o popish_a unscripture-like_a term_n and_o distinction_n or_o rather_o worse_a in_o tell_v not_o only_o of_o distinct_a but_o separate_a person_n which_o be_v plain_o refute_v from_o scripture_n you_o may_v remember_v i_o several_a time_n call_v to_o t._n d._n and_o t._n v._o to_o confess_v their_o error_n i_o show_v how_o inseparable_a the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v reflect_v chief_o on_o the_o word_n separate_a person_n which_o how_o you_o come_v off_o about_o will_v appear_v hereafter_o and_o as_o for_o their_o be_v three_o he_o be_v thou_o w._n m._n dare_v not_o keep_v to_o any_o argument_n from_o thence_o or_o to_o make_v that_o any_o cause_n or_o reason_n why_o we_o must_v own_v they_o to_o be_v three_o person_n though_o here_o thou_o seem_v to_o make_v the_o term_n equivolent_a viz._n three_o person_n or_o he_o be_v so_o than_o it_o appear_v that_o either_o will_v serve_v if_o the_o three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n be_v but_o own_a under_o the_o name_n of_o three_o he_o be_v it_o will_v serve_v instead_o of_o three_o distinct_a person_n but_o then_o are_z all_z he_o be_v or_o males_n person_n and_o all_o she_o be_v or_o female_n no_o person_n what_o strange_a logic_n be_v employ_v here_o and_o where_o do_v the_o scripture_n mention_v three_o increated_a person_n thou_o tell_v of_o be_v they_o three_o distinct_a increated_a person_n if_o so_o then_o may_v thou_o not_o as_o well_o say_v they_o be_v three_o distinct_a infinite_n three_o eternal_o and_o so_o three_o go_n where_o be_v now_o the_o blasphemy_n and_o blasphemer_n and_o christ_n speak_v of_o another_o comforter_n which_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n joh._n 14.16_o be_v not_o another_o person_n distinct_a from_o he_o for_o that_o spirit_n be_v then_o in_o he_o neither_o do_v he_o use_v those_o word_n for_o the_o same_o comforter_n or_o spirit_n be_v in_o he_o and_o be_v that_o divine_a life_n that_o then_o speak_v in_o he_o when_o he_o be_v personal_o present_a with_o they_o he_o do_v not_o say_v he_o will_v send_v they_o another_o person_n to_o comfort_v they_o but_o speak_v more_o spiritual_o for_o though_o they_o have_v be_v comfort_v in_o his_o outward_a presence_n and_o ministry_n yet_o his_o spiritual_a presence_n be_v that_o other_o comforter_n for_o ever_o to_o abide_v with_o they_o for_o in_o that_o joh._n 14.17_o christ_n speak_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n or_o that_o other_o comforter_n say_v he_o that_o dwell_v with_o you_o shall_v be_v in_o you_o vers_n 18._o i_o will_v not_o leave_v you_o comfortless_a i_o will_v come_v unto_o you_o which_o clear_o explain_v his_o former_a word_n which_o to_o say_v this_o comforter_n be_v a_o person_n distinct_a from_o christ_n be_v all_o one_o or_o as_o absurd_a as_o to_o say_v the_o spirit_n or_o life_n that_o be_v in_o he_o be_v a_o distinct_a person_n from_o he_o or_o that_o he_o be_v a_o person_n distinct_a from_o himself_o for_o i_o will_v not_o leave_v you_o comfortless_a i_o will_v come_v unto_o you_o or_o be_v it_o not_o gross_a to_o say_v that_o christ_n in_o his_o people_n be_v a_o person_n distinct_a from_o christ_n or_o
the_o eternal_a word_n and_o as_o to_o thy_o tell_n of_o another_o comforter_n i._n e._n another_o as_o to_o subsistence_n or_o manner_n of_o be_v what_o manner_n of_o be_v and_o wherein_o can_v it_o differ_v from_o christ_n spiritul_a manner_n of_o be_v have_v he_o another_o manner_n of_o be_v distinct_a from_o his_o own_o who_o can_v see_v the_o ignorance_n and_o confusion_n of_o thy_o blind_a distinction_n for_o it_o appear_v that_o thy_o distinction_n of_o three_o distinct_a person_n subsistence_n or_o manner_n of_o be_v be_v attribute_v to_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n before_o christ_n bodily_a or_o personal_a appearance_n in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n thou_o tell_v we_o they_o be_v of_o a_o infinite_a nature_n be_v three_o person_n be_v this_o a_o good_a argument_n for_o thy_o turn_n whereas_o t.u._n say_v christ_n as_o man_n be_v not_o fifty_o year_n old_a pag._n 31._o whilst_o thou_o argue_v from_o john_n 14.16_o for_o their_o be_v three_o distinct_a person_n subsistence_n or_o manner_n of_o be_v for_o be_v they_o three_o distinct_a comforter_n of_o a_o infinite_a nature_n or_o three_o distinct_a separate_a person_n of_o a_o infinite_a nature_n and_o be_v christ_n manner_n of_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n of_o a_o infinite_a nature_n or_o be_v he_o therein_o a_o four_o person_n sure_o when_o christ_n have_v take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n and_o that_o he_o say_v my_o father_n be_v great_a than_o i_o now_o w.m._n confess_v that_o the_o form_n of_o god_n be_v his_o divine_a nature_n which_o be_v above_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n and_o he_o be_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o sinful_a flesh_n make_v a_o little_a low_o than_o the_o angel_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o suffering_n humble_v himself_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross._n in_o this_o manner_n and_o in_o these_o capacity_n he_o be_v not_o declare_v to_o be_v from_o eternity_n but_o as_o he_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n in_o his_o glory_n before_o the_o world_n be_v own_v neither_o can_v three_o coeternal_a coequal_a distinct_a person_n be_v argue_v from_o thence_o for_o the_o controversy_n run_v high_a as_o before_o they_o be_v of_o a_o infinite_a nature_n be_v three_o increated_a person_n he_o shall_v rather_o have_v say_v be_v one_o divine_a substance_n or_o be_v which_o be_v of_o a_o infinite_a nature_n but_o in_o plain_a contradiction_n these_o presbyterian_o tell_v we_o in_o their_o 45._o pag._n that_o in_o the_o abstract_n infiniteness_n be_v not_o applicable_a to_o the_o subsistence_n what_o then_o be_v become_v of_o their_o three_o infinite_a increated_a person_n or_o subsistence_n be_v they_o now_o change_v from_o infinite_a to_o finite_a what_o sad_a work_n be_v this_o where_o be_v the_o blasphemer_n now_o be_v they_o not_o herein_o find_v guilty_a of_o that_o which_o most_o unjust_o they_o have_v charge_v on_o we_o viz._n of_o that_o which_o be_v plain_o derogatory_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o infinite_a god_n by_o go_v to_o fasten_v the_o limitation_n of_o finite_a creature_n upon_o he_o for_o if_o there_o be_v a_o subsistence_n or_o personallity_n or_o manner_n of_o be_v as_o he_o define_v subsistence_n in_o the_o godhead_n which_o be_v not_o infinite_a then_o something_o finite_a be_v in_o god_n which_o be_v no_o less_o than_o blasphemy_n to_o affirm_v and_o if_o there_o be_v three_o such_o distinct_a subsistence_n in_o the_o relative_a property_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n as_o w._n m._n say_v pag._n 19_o to_o which_o infiniteness_n be_v not_o applicable_a then_o have_v they_o deny_v the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v infinite_a and_o by_o this_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v what_o their_o unscriptural_a distinction_n of_o person_n and_o subsistence_n in_o the_o deity_n amount_v to_o and_o how_o most_o derogatory_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o infinite_a god_n they_o be_v but_o the_o remarkableness_n of_o their_o gross_a contradiction_n be_v so_o obvious_a that_o he_o that_o run_v may_v read_v it_o for_o one_o while_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v of_o a_o infinite_a nature_n be_v three_o distinct_a person_n three_o increated_a person_n which_o render_v they_o three_o distinct_a infinite_a and_o so_o three_o go_n another_o while_n infiniteness_n be_v not_o applicable_a to_o they_o as_o such_o or_o as_o subsistence_n which_o render_v they_o under_o the_o limitation_n of_o finite_a creature_n do_v you_o think_v that_o the_o wise_a sort_n either_o among_o papist_n or_o protestant_n or_o church_n of_o england_n own_o these_o man_n management_n of_o this_o matter_n or_o will_v their_o work_n stand_v they_o in_o any_o stead_n or_o be_v to_o the_o advancement_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n in_o other_o nation_n if_o these_o man_n shall_v go_v into_o turkey_n and_o also_o among_o the_o indian_n and_o pretend_v to_o preach_v the_o everlasting_a god_n or_o the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o spirit_n under_o such_o name_n term_n and_o distinction_n as_o be_v three_o distinct_a and_o separate_a person_n or_o subsistence_n to_o which_o infiniteness_n be_v not_o applicable_a what_o will_v be_v the_o effect_n and_o consequence_n of_o such_o preach_n do_v you_o think_v will_v it_o not_o bring_v a_o reproach_n upon_o the_o name_n and_o profession_n of_o christianity_n and_o render_v the_o christian_n as_o believe_v and_o expect_v salvation_n from_o finite_a person_n or_o creature_n or_o else_o if_o they_o shall_v preach_v they_o to_o be_v three_o distinct_a or_o separate_a person_n as_o be_v of_o a_o infinite_a nature_n may_v not_o they_o reasonable_o conclude_v that_o they_o be_v preach_v three_o god_n will_v not_o this_o kind_n of_o preach_v more_o stumble_v the_o jew_n and_o turk_n from_o believe_v in_o christ_n than_o ever_o and_o the_o more_o strengthen_v the_o heathen_a in_o their_o idolatrous_a imagination_n especial_o whilst_o they_o oppose_v the_o light_n within_o as_o a_o idol_n for_o whilst_o a_o doctrine_n be_v preach_v imply_v three_o god_n may_v they_o not_o suppose_v many_o more_o as_o also_o how_o have_v many_o ignorant_a people_n in_o the_o time_n of_o darkness_n be_v beget_v into_o vain_a imagination_n touch_v the_o godhead_n by_o such_o doctrine_n aforesaid_a contrary_a to_o scripture-language_n as_o to_o think_v god_n to_o be_v like_a unto_o a_o man_n or_o person_n whereas_o he_o be_v a_o spirit_n he_o be_v invisible_a even_o that_o eternal_a word_n or_o spirit_n which_o make_v all_o thing_n and_o christ_n be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n not_o divide_v nor_o separate_v from_o he_o who_o image_n he_o be_v asserted_n and_o though_o in_o the_o world_n there_o be_v god_n many_o and_o lord_n many_o yet_o to_o we_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n the_o father_n of_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n and_o we_o in_o he_o and_o one_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n and_o we_o by_o he_o 1_o cor._n 8.6_o so_o that_o it_o be_v never_o any_o design_n or_o plot_n of_o we_o to_o endeavour_v to_o prejudice_v the_o mind_n of_o any_o against_o the_o deity_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o false_o and_o blasphemous_o we_o be_v accuse_v by_o this_o our_o prejudice_v opposer_n w._n m._n what_o you_o mean_v by_o separate_a i_o know_v not_o if_o you_o mean_v so_o separate_a as_o to_o destroy_v the_o unity_n and_o simplicity_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n i_o own_v no_o such_o separation_n if_o you_o take_v it_o to_o be_v all_o one_o with_o distinct_a than_o it_o be_v no_o beg_v the_o question_n and_o in_o their_o 39_o pag._n it_o be_v say_v viz._n the_o word_n separate_a person_n i_o disow_v any_o further_a than_o we_o may_v conceive_v it_o to_o signify_v no_o more_o then_o dictinct_a answ._n it_o appear_v then_o that_o t._n d._n and_o their_o use_v the_o word_n separate_v person_n be_v to_o explain_v their_o meaning_n of_o distinct_a person_n for_o it_o be_v use_v after_o distinct_a viz._n distinct_a and_o separate_a person_n which_o word_n separate_v person_n they_o know_v i_o chief_o reflect_v upon_o at_o the_o dispute_n i_o prove_v the_o contrary_a from_o scripture_n viz._n both_o the_o oneness_n and_o inseparability_n of_o the_o father_n word_n and_o spirit_n but_o see_v they_o own_v no_o such_o separation_n as_o to_o destroy_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n why_o do_v they_o make_v use_n of_o the_o word_n separate_a at_o all_o in_o the_o case_n tell_v we_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v three_o distinct_a and_o separate_a person_n which_o they_o confess_v be_v of_o one_o divine_a essence_n now_o they_o disow_v separate_v any_o otherwise_o then_o it_o signify_v distinct_a but_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v own_a it_o at_o all_o in_o this_o case_n be_v it_o not_o sad_a doctrine_n that_o suppose_v any_o separation_n finiteness_n or_o limitation_n in_o this_o divine_a be_v
competent_a judge_n over_o they_o whilst_o he_o have_v pervert_v they_o both_o in_o the_o former_a power_n day_n and_o now_o also_o and_o whilst_o in_o those_o day_n he_o do_v endeavour_n to_o insinuate_v into_o the_o power_n that_o then_o be_v against_o the_o quaker_n he_o be_v plain_o manifest_v and_o his_o error_n and_o falsehood_n detect_v by_o those_o faithful_a servant_n of_o christ_n samuel_n fisher_n richard_n hubberthorn_n and_o myself_o he_o may_v now_o have_v be_v silent_a from_o rake_v over_o his_o old_a silly_a confuse_a stuff_n so_o long_o since_o answer_v and_o confute_v since_o that_o from_o the_o ample_a confutation_n and_o just_a reproof_n and_o discovery_n give_v against_o he_o by_o samuel_n fisher_n he_o can_v never_o yet_o clear_v himself_o nor_o have_v assay_v a_o replication_n thereto_o but_o only_o a_o slight_n put_v off_o as_o will_v appear_v without_o either_o truth_n or_o reason_n and_o as_o for_o his_o commendation_n of_o the_o pain_n of_o his_o worthy_a friend_n master_n thomas_n vincent_n as_o he_o call_v he_o he_o have_v little_a ground_n to_o applaud_v his_o pain_n for_o he_o have_v sufficient_o manifest_v his_o envy_n error_n confusion_n and_o shallowness_n as_o any_o unbiased_a may_v see_v as_o also_o the_o palpable_a contradiction_n both_o to_o himself_o and_o t._n d._n so_o that_o they_o shall_v first_o have_v study_v to_o see_v a_o reconciliation_n and_o harmony_n between_o their_o own_o principle_n before_o they_o have_v come_v thus_o public_o to_o engage_v but_o it_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o they_o and_o such_o giddy_v spirit_n that_o one_o shall_v oppose_v and_o contradict_v another_o till_o they_o be_v both_o overturn_v and_o break_v to_o piece_n in_o their_o war_n but_o if_o his_o worthy_a friend_n thomas_n vincent_n have_v do_v so_o worthy_o against_o the_o quaker_n why_o do_v t._n d._n take_v so_o much_o pain_n again_o after_o he_o why_o do_v he_o actum_fw-la agere_fw-la as_o he_o say_v his_o answer_n be_v because_o of_o some_o reflection_n upon_o he_o also_o that_o as_o experience_n have_v show_v there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n of_o intellectual_a gift_n and_o that_o the_o method_n phrase_n and_o notion_n of_o scarce_a any_o one_o man_n be_v acceptable_a to_o all_o he_o say_v by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o be_v conscious_a or_o at_o least_o jealous_a that_o his_o worthy_a master_n vincent_n work_n will_v not_o be_v so_o acceptable_a as_o his_o own_o but_o will_v give_v distaste_n and_o therefore_o he_o have_v endeavour_v to_o smooth_v it_o over_o and_o to_o new_a moddel_n it_o in_o another_o phrase_n according_a to_o what_o he_o have_v imagine_v and_o learn_v out_o of_o writer_n and_o old_a author_n both_o popish_a and_o other_o but_o what_o say_v he_o for_o not_o answer_v samuel_n fisher_n book_n against_o himself_o jo._n owen_n baxter_n and_o tomb_n entitle_v rusticus_n ad_fw-la academicos_fw-la which_o they_o be_v never_o able_a to_o answer_v nor_o to_o reply_v to_o t._n d._n excuse_v himself_o as_o follow_v viz._n if_o any_o quaker_n shall_v demand_v why_o i_o do_v not_o answer_v samuel_n fisher_n be_v book_n against_o i_o instead_o of_o write_v against_o a_o new_a man_n i_o answer_v that_o i_o be_o guide_v in_o my_o neglect_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o able_a person_n than_o myself_o that_o that_o book_n be_v but_o a_o bundle_n of_o impertinent_a cavil_n etc._n etc._n indeed_o this_o be_v a_o very_a easy_a way_n of_o answer_v which_o if_o we_o shall_v deal_v so_o with_o t._n d._n what_o will_v he_o say_v to_o it_o and_o to_o such_o neglect_n but_o this_o do_v not_o clear_v himself_o from_o samuel_n fisher_n answer_n but_o it_o stand_v over_o his_o head_n and_o if_o he_o be_v guide_v by_o able_a person_n than_o himself_o in_o not_o answer_v s._n f._n those_o able_a person_n for_o aught_o as_o appear_v might_n see_v t._n d._n so_o baffle_v and_o confute_v that_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o he_o to_o strive_v any_o further_o and_o if_o able_a person_n than_o himself_o do_v advice_n he_o in_o that_o case_n he_o shall_v have_v follow_v the_o example_n thereof_o so_o as_o not_o to_o have_v meddle_v as_o he_o have_v do_v to_o the_o further_o manifest_v his_o weakness_n and_o folly_n and_o as_o for_o his_o instance_n of_o biddle_n twelve_o article_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n deity_n it_o be_v no_o precedent_n nor_o instance_n for_o we_o as_o be_v most_o false_o insinuate_v against_o we_o whilst_o we_o never_o deny_v the_o deity_n or_o divinity_n of_o either_o father_n word_n or_o holy_a ghost_n and_o how_o do_v he_o advise_v the_o reader_n to_o be_v at_o pain_n to_o understand_v the_o positive_a ground_n of_o the_o great_a truth_n oppose_v by_o the_o quaker_n as_o he_o false_o say_v what_o must_v give_v the_o understanding_n thereof_o if_o not_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n within_o and_o how_o must_v sacred_a mystery_n be_v know_v and_o what_o must_v bring_v to_o the_o right_a use_n of_o reason_n and_o to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n if_o immediate_a revelation_n or_o inspiration_n be_v suppose_v not_o attainable_a in_o these_o day_n can_v the_o natural_a man_n with_o his_o natural_a understanding_n know_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v spiritual_a sure_o no_n or_o know_v the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o scripture_n without_o the_o guidance_n of_o that_o infallible_a spirit_n that_o give_v they_o forth_o no_o sure_a for_o it_o be_v the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o almighty_a that_o give_v understanding_n and_o see_v also_o that_o t.d._n confess_v that_o reason_n tell_v we_o the_o nature_n and_o work_n of_o god_n be_v above_o our_o reach_n and_o that_o god_n be_v not_o gof_n if_o he_o can_v be_v comprehend_v by_o a_o creature_n which_o if_o so_o that_o the_o nature_n and_o work_n of_o god_n be_v above_o he_o and_o their_o reach_n and_o comprehension_n why_o have_v he_o assay_v so_o much_o by_o his_o natural_a understanding_n to_o define_v and_o distinguish_v the_o godhead_n into_o three_o distinct_a person_n which_o he_o have_v no_o scripture_n for_o nor_o yet_o reason_v to_o demonstrate_v nor_o revelation_n to_o ground_v a_o faith_n upon_o in_o that_o case_n whilst_o the_o presbyterian_o be_v wont_a to_o affirm_v revelation_n to_o be_v cease_v and_o to_o be_v sure_a god_n will_v not_o put_v the_o seal_n of_o his_o immediate_a power_n to_o a_o falsehood_n as_o be_v confess_v so_o that_o whilst_o we_o have_v neither_o revelation_n scripture_n reason_n nor_o seal_n of_o immediate_a power_n for_o their_o doctrine_n and_o distinction_n put_v upon_o the_o deity_n we_o have_v ground_n at_o least_o to_o question_v they_o if_o not_o positive_o to_o oppose_v they_o as_o unscriptural_a irrational_a implicit_a doctrine_n and_o tradition_n which_o have_v tend_v to_o vail_v both_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n christ_n and_o holy_a spirit_n which_o we_o confess_v from_o people_n and_o now_o to_o t._n d_n definition_n of_o the_o word_n person_n first_o from_o aquinas_n as_o be_v a_o individual_a substance_n of_o a_o rational_a nature_n but_o his_o worthy_a friend_n tho._n vincent_n have_v deny_v the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n to_o be_v three_o substance_n then_o i_o ask_v how_o they_o can_v be_v three_o distinct_a person_n whilst_o a_o person_n be_v a_o individual_a substance_n what_o contradiction_n be_v this_o but_o then_o t._n d._n say_v some_o think_v it_o viz._n aquinas_n his_o explanation_n of_o person_n liable_a to_o some_o exception_n and_o therefore_o he_o choose_v to_o borrow_v that_o of_o learned_a wotton_n on_o 1_o joh._n 1.2_o pag._n 2._o that_o a_o person_n be_v a_o individual_a subsistance_n or_o subsistent_n rather_o in_o a_o intellectual_a nature_n or_o a_o several_a or_o singular_a thing_n that_o subsist_v by_o itself_o etc._n etc._n a_o man_n we_o call_v a_o person_n a_o person_n note_v some_o one_o endue_v with_o reason_n and_o understanding_n which_o be_v several_a and_o distinct_a from_o another_o a_o person_n be_v entire_a of_o itself_o etc._n etc._n pag._n 1_o 2._o concern_v which_o i_o query_n first_o whether_o the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o holy_a spirit_n be_v three_o several_a and_o singular_a thing_n that_o subsist_v each_o by_o himself_o each_o one_o from_o another_o yea_o or_o nay_o second_o whether_o a_o man_n be_v a_o person_n be_v a_o competent_a instance_n for_o proof_n of_o his_o maker_n be_v three_o several_a person_n and_o whether_o a_o man_n subsist_v by_o himself_o three_o whether_o christ_n be_v several_a and_o distinct_a by_o himself_o from_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n several_a and_o distinct_a from_o both_o if_o yes_o where_o or_o in_o what_o place_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n or_o out_o of_o it_o be_v the_o one_o entire_a and_o sever_v from_o the_o other_o and_o how_o far_o distant_a one_o from_o another_o four_o and_o if_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n do_v
in_o the_o flesh_n have_v cease_v from_o sin_n that_o he_o no_o long_o shall_v live_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o time_n in_o the_o flesh_n to_o the_o lust_n of_o man_n but_o to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n chap._n 4.1_o 2._o now_o the_o cease_n from_o sin_n and_o follow_v of_o christ_n step_n in_o the_o harmless_a sinless_a state_n be_v the_o right_a use_n and_o end_n of_o his_o suffer_v for_o man_n and_o his_o example_n to_o man_n but_o then_o mark_v t._n d_n doctrine_n as_o follow_v what_o a_o example_n and_o subject_n of_o wrath_n and_o vindictive_a justice_n so_o term_v he_o render_v christ_n viz._n t._n d._n pag._n 36.4_o christ_n when_o he_o suffer_v be_v not_o innocent_a and_o when_o god_n require_v satisfaction_n of_o he_o it_o be_v due_a from_o he_o christ_n be_v guilty_a of_o our_o sin_n when_o he_o suffer_v for_o it_o for_o guilt_n be_v but_o obligatio_fw-la ad_fw-la paenam_fw-la a_o obligation_n to_o undergo_v punishment_n which_o christ_n be_v under_o by_o contract_n hebr._n 7.22_o answ._n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o these_o presbyterian_o and_o those_o of_o their_o affinity_n accuse_v all_o christ_n follower_n of_o be_v sinner_n and_o imperperfect_a all_o their_o life_n time_n since_o that_o t._n d._n one_o of_o their_o leader_n or_o chieftain_n have_v accuse_v christ_n not_o to_o be_v innocent_a when_o he_o suffer_v say_v also_o christ_n be_v guilty_a of_o our_o sin_n when_o he_o suffer_v for_o it_o which_o how_o false_a and_o blasphemous_a this_o charge_n be_v against_o christ_n i_o appeal_v to_o all_o sober_a and_o moderate_a professor_n of_o christianity_n who_o have_v any_o real_a esteem_n and_o reverence_n to_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o glory_n and_o how_o contrary_a to_o plain_a scripture-testimony_n plentiful_o give_v of_o he_o as_o be_v a_o lamb_n yea_o the_o lamb_n of_o god_n which_o declare_v his_o innocency_n and_o purity_n be_v without_o sin_n or_o guile_n who_o offer_v up_o himself_o by_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n a_o lamb_n without_o spot_n to_o god_n 1_o pet._n 1.19_o chap._n 2.22_o hebr._n 9.14_o isa._n 53.7_o act_n 8.32_o now_o his_o be_v a_o lamb_n without_o spot_n and_o without_o blemish_n manifest_v he_o to_o be_v a_o perfect_a offer_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n as_o also_o how_o guilt_n be_v more_o than_o bare_o a_o obligation_n to_o undergo_v punishment_n be_v always_o impute_v to_o the_o transgressor_n and_o disobedient_a for_o sin_n and_o not_o to_o christ_n rom._n 3.19_o jam._n 2.10_o 1_o cor._n 11.27_o deut._n 19.13_o and_o 21.9_o exod._n 34.7_o although_o it_o be_v true_a those_o chief_a priest_n false_a witness_n and_o persecutor_n of_o christ_n among_o the_o jew_n and_o such_o as_o accuse_v he_o for_o a_o blaspemer_n they_o say_v also_o that_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o death_n mat._n 26.65_o 66._o mark_v 14.64_o who_o example_n t._n d._n have_v follow_v in_o accuse_v christ_n of_o be_v guilty_a and_o not_o innocent_a but_o if_o t._n d._n shall_v say_v he_o mean_v not_o that_o christ_n be_v real_o or_o inherent_o or_o personal_o guilty_a of_o sin_n but_o by_o imputation_n and_o so_o not_o innocent_a but_o guilty_a of_o our_o sin_n by_o this_o we_o may_v perceive_v then_o what_o he_o mean_v by_o imputation_n that_o on_o the_o one_o hand_n a_o innocent_a person_n be_v make_v guilty_a and_o be_v not_o innocent_a whilst_o he_o have_v no_o sin_n nor_o guile_n or_o evil_n in_o he_o and_o so_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n by_o their_o own_o rule_n of_o contrary_n contraria_fw-la contrariorum_fw-la ratio_fw-la person_n be_v to_o be_v reckon_v imputative_o righteous_a and_o innocent_a in_o god_n sight_n whilst_o there_o be_v neither_o righteousness_n nor_o innocency_n real_o in_o they_o which_o be_v both_o unreasonable_a unscriptural_a and_o apparent_o false_a it_o be_v a_o false_a imputation_n of_o the_o persecute_v jew_n and_o tho._n danson_n to_o impute_v guilt_n of_o sin_n to_o christ_n and_o to_o accuse_v he_o with_o not_o be_v innocent_a when_o no_o sin_n evil_a nor_o guilt_n be_v in_o he_o and_o it_o be_v as_o false_a a_o imputation_n of_o they_o to_o impute_v christ_n righteousness_n to_o sinful_a person_n who_o be_v not_o in_o it_o nor_o partake_v of_o it_o in_o they_o so_o it_o be_v neither_o god_n imputation_n nor_o christ_n for_o have_v abraham_n no_o righteousness_n real_o in_o he_o when_o his_o faith_n be_v reckon_v to_o he_o for_o righteousness_n where_o then_o be_v his_o faith_n and_o the_o righteousness_n and_o obedience_n of_o it_o if_o in_o reality_n he_o be_v not_o a_o partaker_n and_o a_o enjoyer_n thereof_o within_o from_o whence_o do_v his_o act_n or_o work_n of_o real_a obedience_n proceed_v and_o flow_v if_o not_o from_o his_o live_a faith_n and_o its_o righteousness_n within_o sure_o they_o be_v of_o very_o mean_a capacity_n that_o can_v see_v t._n d_n absurdity_n ignorance_n in_o these_o matter_n and_o his_o vain_a imagination_n and_o conceit_n about_o imputation_n further_a will_v appear_v and_o that_o the_o stress_n and_o drift_n of_o all_o his_o and_o his_o brethren_n work_n in_o these_o invent_a doctrine_n ●s_a to_o keep_v people_n in_o their_o sin_n and_o imperfection_n all_o their_o day_n and_o so_o their_o work_n in_o render_v christ_n the_o subject_n of_o guilt_n and_o so_o of_o vengeance_n that_o belong_v to_o devil_n and_o their_o render_v people_n the_o subject_n of_o his_o righteousness_n and_o justification_n by_o imputation_n whilst_o unjust_a and_o sinful_a in_o themselves_o it_o all_o centre_n in_o their_o sinful_a doctrine_n for_o sin_n and_o imperfection_n term_v of_o life_n pag._n 37._o as_o to_o t._n d_n tell_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n incarnation_n the_o creation_n of_o his_o body_n and_o soul_n the_o part_n of_o that_o nature_n he_o subsist_v in_o etc._n etc._n to_o this_o i_o say_v if_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v both_o create_v do_v not_o this_o render_v he_o a_o four_o person_n for_o creation_n be_v in_o time_n which_o contradict_v their_o doctrine_n of_o three_o distinct_a increated_a coeternal_a coessential_a person_n in_o the_o deity_n see_v that_o which_o be_v create_v be_v not_o so_o but_o herein_o whether_o do_v not_o he_o and_o their_o ignorance_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n and_o their_o denial_n of_o christ_n divinity_n plain_o appear_v yea_o or_o nay_o where_o do_v the_o scripture_n say_v that_o his_o soul_n be_v create_v for_o be_v not_o he_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o father_n glory_n and_o the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o divine_a substance_n but_o suppose_v the_o soul_n of_o christ_n be_v with_o the_o body_n create_v in_o time_n i_o ask_v if_o from_o eternity_n he_o be_v a_o person_n distinct_a from_o god_n and_o his_o holy_a spirit_n without_o either_o soul_n or_o body_n and_o where_o do_v the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o any_o person_n without_o either_o soul_n or_o body_n le_fw-fr we_o have_v plain_a scripture_n pag._n 38._o whilst_o t._n d._n grant_v our_o actual_a freedom_n from_o sin_n and_o wrath_n depend_v on_o what_o christ_n do_v and_o suffer_v as_o on_o and_o upon_o its_o mean_n what_o become_v of_o his_o doctrine_n and_o plea_n for_o sin_n and_o imperfection_n which_o they_o that_o continue_v in_o term_n of_o life_n can_v be_v true_o say_v to_o be_v actual_o free_v from_o sin_n nor_o yet_o imputative_o righteous_a in_o god_n sight_n whilst_o actual_o and_o real_o sinful_a and_o if_o christ_n obedience_n be_v not_o intend_v to_o exempt_v we_o from_o a_o personal_a obedience_n to_o the_o law_n as_o be_v confess_v in_o pag._n 38._o then_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o end_n of_o his_o obedience_n to_o live_v in_o sin_n and_o disobedience_n term_v of_o life_n and_o for_o any_o to_o be_v reckon_v imputative_o righteous_a when_o actual_o disobedient_a second_o and_o if_o we_o be_v only_o so_o far_o make_v righteous_a by_o christ_n obedience_n as_o unrighteous_a by_o our_o own_o disobedience_n how_o far_o be_v that_o have_v we_o not_o be_v actual_o unrighteous_a and_o shall_v we_o so_o far_o be_v make_v righteous_a by_o christ_n righteousness_n be_v not_o this_o more_o than_o your_o doctrine_n of_o imputation_n whilst_o personal_o sinful_a amount_v to_o but_o your_o flat_a contradiction_n in_o these_o matter_n be_v evident_a pag._n 39_o and_o though_o christ_n be_v our_o surety_n this_o do_v not_o exempt_v we_o either_o from_o follow_v he_o or_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o god_n but_o the_o more_o engage_v we_o therein_o and_o herein_o we_o know_v acceptance_n in_o the_o belove_a of_o god_n in_o that_o holy_a conversation_n which_o his_o pure_a law_n within_o enjoin_v without_o obedience_n to_o which_o god_n be_v not_o well_o please_v nor_o satisfy_v on_o man_n part_n though_o he_o be_v even_o well_o please_v and_o satisfy_v in_o his_o own_o son_n both_o in_o his_o do_v and_o suffer_v
as_o in_o pag._n 31._o he_o plead_v for_o make_v use_n of_o other_o word_n expression_n and_o phrase_n that_o neither_o be_v literal_o nor_o formal_o contain_v in_o scripture_n and_o so_o make_v use_v of_o his_o conception_n and_o apprehension_n of_o what_o be_v contain_v therein_o see_v pag._n 30_o 31._o but_o then_o again_o another_o while_n he_o say_v let_v we_o naked_o attend_v to_o what_o the_o scripture_n assert_n as_o in_o pag._n 42._o and_o in_o pag._n 110._o he_o tell_v we_o of_o manifest_v what_o be_v reveal_v express_o in_o scripture_n concern_v god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n so_o that_o many_o time_n he_o will_v make_v people_n believe_v as_o if_o he_o will_v naked_o and_o exact_o keep_v to_o the_o scripture_n but_o then_o at_o other_o time_n his_o notion_n conception_n meaning_n and_o odd_a invent_v term_n must_v be_v put_v upon_o they_o and_o man_n must_v either_o confess_v to_o those_o or_o else_o be_v liable_a to_o he_o and_o his_o brethren_n censure_n of_o be_v socinian_o heretic_n blasphemer_n and_o what_o not_o and_o though_o he_o have_v appear_v a_o little_a smother_v then_o his_o brother_n tho._n vincent_n have_v do_v in_o his_o rail_a pamphlet_n yet_o he_o have_v wrong_v we_o by_o his_o false_a insinuation_n against_o we_o as_o if_o we_o deny_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n and_o desert_v our_o former_a principle_n also_o he_o have_v represent_v we_o as_o be_v in_o conjunction_n with_o those_o who_o he_o accuse_v of_o oppose_v or_o deny_v the_o oneness_n of_o the_o deity_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v god_n which_o we_o be_v not_o at_o all_o concern_v in_o nor_o guilty_a of_o and_o our_o book_n and_o write_n now_o and_o from_o the_o very_a beginning_n evince_v the_o contrary_n but_o then_o in_o pag._n 129._o he_o confess_v that_o the_o objection_n these_o man_n principal_o insist_v upon_o be_v mere_o against_o the_o explanation_n we_o use_v of_o this_o doctrine_n and_o not_o against_o the_o primitive_a revelation_n of_o it_o which_o be_v the_o principal_a object_n of_o our_o faith_n etc._n etc._n now_o if_o by_o these_o man_n he_o intend_v we_o call_v quaker_n as_o be_v apparent_a he_o do_v by_o his_o present_a discouse_n he_o have_v then_o very_o much_o clear_v we_o from_o other_o of_o he_o and_o his_o brethren_n accusation_n and_o thereby_o have_v also_o plain_o contradict_v both_o himself_o and_o they_o for_o here_o our_o objection_n be_v mere_o against_o their_o explanation_n and_o not_o against_o the_o primitive_a revelation_n or_o principal_a object_n of_o faith_n so_o whilst_o the_o revelation_n which_o be_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o principal_a object_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o object_v against_o but_o own_v and_o profess_v by_o we_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v very_o unjust_a and_o injurious_a either_o in_o he_o or_o his_o brethren_n to_o insinuate_v against_o we_o as_o if_o we_o deny_v either_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o holy_a spirit_n though_o as_o to_o their_o distinction_n about_o personality_n subsistance_n modallity_n and_o the_o like_v invent_v term_n and_o name_n which_o they_o put_v upon_o the_o deity_n we_o must_v needs_o except_v against_o as_o not_o scriptural_a nor_o proceed_v from_o any_o naked_a attention_n to_o what_o the_o scripture_n assert_n which_o j._n o._n do_v but_o pretend_v to_o but_o from_o man_n conception_n and_o tradition_n which_o be_v uphold_v by_o the_o wisdom_n which_o this_o world_n teach_v and_o not_o that_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v and_o then_o in_o pag._n 89._o he_o go_v to_o accuse_v and_o vilify_v we_o in_o these_o word_n viz._n our_o quaker_n for_o a_o long_a time_n hover_v up_o and_o down_o like_o a_o swarm_n of_o fly_n with_o a_o confuse_a noise_n and_o hum_v what_o falsehood_n and_o scorn_n be_v here_o for_o such_o a_o doctor_n to_o express_v begin_v now_o to_o settle_v in_o the_o opinion_n late_o by_o they_o declare_v for_o this_o be_v a_o false_a insinuation_n again_o what_o their_o thought_n will_v fall_v to_o be_v concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v content_v to_o speak_v intelligeable_o and_o according_a to_o the_o usage_n of_o other_o man_n or_o the_o pattern_n of_o scripture_n the_o great_a rule_n of_o speak_v or_o treat_v about_o spiritual_a thing_n i_o know_v not_o and_o i_o be_o uncertain_a whether_o they_o do_v themselves_o or_o no._n thus_o far_o j._n owen_n to_o which_o i_o say_v in_o the_o first_o of_o these_o expression_n he_o have_v scornful_o and_o false_o accuse_v we_o as_o also_o with_o beginning_n now_o to_o settle_v in_o opinion_n for_o we_o be_v neither_o so_o beginning_n nor_o so_o to_o begin_v but_o be_v settle_v in_o the_o truth_n out_o of_o and_o above_o man_n invent_v opinion_n about_o which_o be_v so_o many_o division_n and_o sect_n among_o they_o but_o if_o by_o opinion_n he_o intend_v socinianism_n as_o he_o call_v and_o represent_v it_o his_o own_o testimony_n shall_v testify_v against_o he_o as_o a_o false_a accuser_n of_o we_o herein_o as_o in_o pag._n 129._o where_o he_o confess_v our_o objection_n to_o be_v mere_o against_o the_o explanation_n they_o use_v and_o not_o against_o the_o primitive_a revelation_n of_o it_o so_o than_o we_o be_v not_o guilty_a of_o such_o opinion_n as_o either_o deny_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n or_o that_o tend_v to_o lessen_v he_o in_o any_o respect_n or_o office_n relate_v to_o man_n salvation_n for_o our_o desire_n be_v and_o our_o endeavour_n have_v be_v the_o exaltation_n of_o his_o name_n power_n and_o glory_n over_o all_o neither_o have_v we_o be_v hover_v nor_o in_o confusion_n as_o false_o he_o have_v represent_v we_o and_o if_o he_o know_v not_o what_o our_o thought_n will_v fall_v into_o concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o we_o do_v ourselves_o or_o no_o he_o shall_v therefore_o have_v be_v silent_a of_o accuse_v or_o revile_v we_o as_o he_o have_v do_v because_o it_o appear_v it_o be_v in_o his_o ignorance_n and_o uncertainty_n that_o he_o have_v thus_o vilify_v we_o and_o insinuate_v against_o we_o he_o shall_v have_v receive_v a_o better_a information_n and_o knowledge_n of_o we_o before_o he_o have_v thus_o revile_v we_o and_o not_o to_o have_v go_v and_o bespatter_v and_o vilify_v a_o whole_a body_n of_o people_n to_o render_v they_o odious_a from_o his_o own_o uncertain_a thought_n of_o they_o for_o he_o will_v not_o be_v so_o deal_v by_o himself_o and_o the_o reader_n may_v take_v notice_n that_o a_o great_a part_n of_o his_o book_n wherein_o he_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v the_o divinity_n or_o deity_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o which_o he_o appear_v as_o one_o oppose_v some_o great_a enemy_n among_o who_o we_o be_v number_v we_o be_v unconcern_v therein_o have_v never_o deny_v christ_n divinity_n and_o if_o his_o own_o testimony_n may_v be_v of_o any_o value_n we_o be_v clear_v by_o it_o as_o before_o in_o pag._n 129._o alas_o poor_a man_n j._n 0._o have_v miss_v his_o mark_n in_o shoot_v thus_o uncertain_o and_o at_o random_n against_o the_o quaker_n and_o where_o he_o add_v touch_v the_o holy_a ghost_n whether_o he_o may_v be_v the_o light_n within_o they_o or_o a_o infallible_a afflatus_fw-la be_v uncertain_a though_o it_o be_v uncertain_a to_o j._n o._n it_o be_v certain_a to_o we_o that_o have_v the_o testimony_n and_o evidence_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o we_o which_o give_v we_o both_o life_n light_n and_o power_n and_o we_o know_v he_o to_o be_v infallible_a how_o deride_o soever_o he_o speak_v of_o it_o as_o also_o according_a to_o the_o precious_a promise_n of_o god_n which_o hereby_o we_o know_v in_o a_o large_a measure_n the_o fulfil_n of_o we_o experience_n christ_n to_o be_v in_o we_o and_o in_o that_o the_o father_n word_n and_o spirit_n be_v confess_v to_o be_v one_o power_n wisdom_n and_o love_n and_o to_o be_v of_o one_o divine_a substance_n nature_n and_o essence_n this_o we_o neither_o do_v nor_o ever_o do_v deny_v and_o god_n be_v in_o his_o people_n and_o dwell_v in_o they_o and_o walk_v in_o they_o and_o the_o spirit_n be_v send_v into_o our_o heart_n so_o they_o be_v not_o divide_v distinct_a and_o separate_a person_n etc._n etc._n as_o may_v be_v read_v in_o john_n 17.21_o to_o the_o end_n where_o christ_n say_v that_o they_o may_v all_o be_v one_o as_o thou_o father_n be_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o that_o they_o also_o may_v be_v one_o in_o we_o that_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o and_o the_o glory_n which_o thou_o give_v i_o i_o have_v give_v they_o that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o even_o as_o we_o be_v one_o i_o in_o they_o thou_o in_o i_o that_o
be_v justify_v by_o his_o death_n and_o by_o his_o offer_v up_o once_o for_o all_o answer_v in_o plain_a word_n and_o whether_o or_o no_o you_o will_v make_v a_o sect_n that_o he_o die_v for_o some_o ungodly_a and_o some_o sinner_n only_o for_o the_o son_n of_o adam_n be_v the_o sinner_n and_o ungodly_a but_o he_o that_o believe_v be_v bear_v of_o god_n and_o they_o receive_v christ_n and_o he_o give_v they_o power_n to_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o they_o know_v he_o die_v for_o they_o and_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o it_o and_o have_v the_o benefit_n of_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n and_o what_o be_v the_o light_n that_o shine_v in_o the_o darkness_n and_o the_o darkness_n comprehend_v it_o not_o what_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o the_o wicked_a grieve_v vex_a and_o quench_v where_o be_v it_o and_o what_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n that_o reprove_v the_o world_n of_o sin_n where_o be_v it_o that_o lead_v the_o saint_n into_o all_o truth_n come_v we_o must_v have_v plain_a scripture_n for_o these_o thing_n what_o be_v the_o law_n that_o god_n will_v write_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o put_v in_o the_o mind_n that_o all_o shall_v know_v he_o from_o the_o great_a to_o the_o least_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o every_o one_o teach_v his_o brother_n and_o shall_v all_o know_v the_o lord_n what_o be_v that_o light_n that_o shine_v in_o the_o heart_n to_o give_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o the_o face_n of_o christ_n jesus_n 2_o cor._n 4._o what_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o heart_n the_o apostle_n preach_v and_o the_o people_n be_v to_o obey_v it_o and_o do_v it_o and_o what_o be_v that_o rule_n that_o adam_n have_v and_o all_o the_o holy_a man_n in_o the_o old_a world_n and_o what_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o enoch_n faith_n by_o which_o he_o be_v translate_v and_o abraham_n faith_n who_o obey_v god_n and_o forsake_v his_o country_n answer_v these_o thing_n by_o scripture_n because_o you_o say_v the_o write_n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o presbyterian_o and_o independent_n have_v you_o forget_v all_o your_o petition_n and_o address_n you_o petition_v and_o make_v to_o the_o other_o power_n against_o the_o quaker_n if_o you_o have_v forget_v they_o read_v william_n caton_n be_v book_n of_o your_o petition_n and_o address_n gather_v up_o and_o down_o the_o nation_n what_o you_o say_v of_o oliver_n and_o richard_n and_o how_o the_o people_n of_o god_n in_o scorn_n call_v quaker_n the_o first_o beginning_n of_o call_v they_o so_o be_v at_o derby_n by_o one_o bennet_n a_o independent_a about_o 19_o year_n since_o and_o then_o when_o the_o people_n call_v quaker_n be_v gather_v together_o in_o divers_a place_n to_o worship_n god_n than_o you_o say_v they_o be_v plot_v together_o against_o oliver_n who_o some_o of_o you_o call_v the_o light_n of_o your_o eye_n and_o breath_n of_o your_o nostril_n to_o bring_v in_o king_n charles_n and_o oliver_n say_v we_o will_v not_o hurt_v a_o mouse_n at_o that_o time_n though_o he_o do_v cast_v many_o of_o we_o in_o prison_n through_o you_o after_o that_o and_o than_o you_o baptise_a we_o in_o your_o prison_n by_o cruel_a suffering_n of_o all_o man_n you_o shall_v hold_v your_o tongue_n in_o bawl_v so_o against_o we_o see_v the_o light_n of_o your_o eye_n and_o breath_n of_o your_o nostril_n be_v go_v and_o what_o be_v it_o not_o through_o some_o of_o you_o that_o the_o act_n against_o sturdy_n beggar_n come_v forth_o upon_o which_o friend_n at_o that_o time_n can_v hardly_o travel_v three_o or_o four_o mile_n from_o their_o own_o house_n but_o they_o be_v whip_v man_n worth_a three_o or_o four-score_n pound_n or_o a_o hundred_o a_o year_n be_v whip_v for_o beggar_n and_o vagrant_n and_o then_o do_v you_o not_o get_v another_o act_n that_o we_o must_v not_o speak_v to_o you_o in_o go_v or_o come_v from_o a_o steeplehouse_n and_o how_o friend_n be_v throng_v in_o prison_n up_o and_o down_o in_o the_o nation_n by_o you_o answer_v these_o query_n and_o thus_o you_o may_v see_v what_o a_o havoc_n you_o make_v in_o your_o day_n but_o when_o persecution_n come_v you_o dare_v hardly_o look_v out_o with_o your_o head_n yourselves_o and_o be_v there_o ever_o the_o like_a know_v or_o see_v how_o your_o brethren_n turn_v from_o north_n to_o south_n and_o from_o south_n to_o north_n and_o there_o they_o can_v turn_v and_o chap_v and_o change_v and_o yet_o you_o can_v tell_v we_o then_o that_o the_o common-prayer_n be_v hell_n and_o egyptian_a bondage_n and_o we_o can_v hardly_o have_v a_o meeting_n but_o you_o be_v incense_a the_o ruler_n against_o we_o that_o we_o be_v plot_v to_o bring_v in_o king_n charles_n and_o how_o many_o in_o those_o day_n be_v put_v in_o prison_n upon_o that_o account_n by_o you_o because_o we_o go_v to_o meeting_n we_o can_v tell_v you_o we_o have_v a_o list_n of_o they_o and_o yet_o the_o quaker_n be_v house_n creeper_n say_v you_o when_o you_o have_v get_v the_o mass-house_n and_o tithe_n and_o your_o easter-reckoning_n and_o midsummer-dues_a and_o strain_v our_o good_n for_o your_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o who_o be_v become_v the_o house_n creeper_n now_o than_o you_o have_v get_v the_o old_a mass-house_n oh_o your_o filthiness_n come_v to_o be_v make_v manifest_a to_o all_o man_n and_o you_o have_v make_v yourselves_o ridiculous_a who_o be_v fight_v against_o a_o innocent_a people_n that_o wish_v hurt_v to_o no_o man_n but_o the_o good_a of_o all_o man_n and_o do_v you_o think_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v nor_o remember_v and_o reckon_v with_o you_o for_o all_o these_o thing_n dare_v you_o look_v into_o the_o book_n of_o your_o action_n and_o conscience_n and_o see_v what_o be_v write_v there_o and_o see_v if_o they_o be_v not_o record_v how_o now_o presbyterian_o high_a priest_n what_o be_v this_o your_o doctrine_n that_o you_o now_o preach_v up_o for_o your_o hearer_n to_o go_v to_o a_o bawdy-house_n as_o thomas_n vincent_n speak_v what_o liberty_n here_o do_v you_o give_v to_o youth_n and_o your_o hearer_n who_o say_v it_o be_v worse_a to_o go_v to_o the_o quaker_n meeting_n than_o to_o a_o bawdy-house_n you_o plead_v for_o a_o body_n of_o sin_n as_o long_o as_o you_o live_v but_o now_o it_o be_v come_v out_o indeed_o when_o you_o plead_v for_o a_o bawdy-house_n rather_o than_o quaker_n meeting_n it_o be_v like_o the_o presbyterian_a priest_n know_v where_o they_o be_v it_o appear_v as_o if_o he_o think_v more_o of_o a_o bawdy-house_n than_o of_o christ_n and_o virtue_n so_o it_o be_v clear_a here_o you_o be_v they_o that_o turn_v the_o people_n to_o vice_n and_o from_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o truth_n ellimas_n like_a seek_v to_o pervert_v for_o the_o quaker_n meeting_n be_v in_o the_o fear_n and_o power_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o meet_v together_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n jesus_n so_o it_o be_v like_o you_o love_v meeting_n at_o bawdy-house_n more_o than_o the_o meeting_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n who_o meet_v to_o worship_n god_n and_o if_o this_o be_v your_o doctrine_n than_o you_o must_v enlarge_v your_o brothel_n and_o bawdy-house_n as_o they_o do_v at_o rome_n legorn_n and_o venice_n and_o other_o part_n in_o italy_n and_o then_o they_o will_v give_v you_o tithe_n and_o easter-reckoning_n and_o midsummer-dues_a for_o have_v you_o not_o call_v bawdy-house_n people_n good_a church_n member_n and_o have_v you_o not_o take_v tithe_n of_o they_o and_o will_v you_o not_o say_v the_o peace_n of_o god_n to_o they_o for_o pay_v you_o tithe_n who_o will_v have_v think_v that_o we_o shall_v have_v have_v such_o unvertuous_a expression_n from_o the_o presbyterian_o that_o this_o stink_a savour_n shall_v have_v lyen_fw-we cover_v under_o their_o weed_n well_o the_o quaker_n must_v declare_v against_o all_o your_o bawdy-house_n which_o thou_o vincent_n say_v thou_o have_v rather_o thy_o people_n shall_v go_v to_o than_o to_o the_o quaker_n meeting_n where_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v preach_v and_o so_o presbyterian_o if_o this_o be_v your_o doctrine_n to_o your_o people_n to_o send_v they_o to_o bawdy-house_n rather_o than_o to_o send_v they_o to_o a_o meeting_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n we_o utter_o deny_v you_o and_o your_o bawdy-house_n too_o and_o be_v it_o not_o a_o shame_n to_o put_v in_o print_n to_o tell_v the_o world_n that_o thou_o will_v rather_o have_v thy_o people_n go_v to_o a_o bawdy-house_n than_o to_o a_o quaker_n meeting_n for_o it_o be_v like_a if_o thou_o will_v set_v up_o that_o house_n thou_o may_v have_v a_o yearly_a revenue_n like_o thy_o father_n the_o pope_n out_o of_o your_o bawdy-house_n it_o be_v like_a if_o you_o be_v there_o you_o may_v
child_n of_o the_o light_n as_o in_o joh._n 14._o and_o deny_v that_o which_o shall_v give_v people_n the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o light_n that_o be_v in_o their_o heart_n the_o light_n of_o jesus_n 2_o cor._n 4._o and_o so_o people_n see_v what_o these_o man_n can_v preach_v that_o deny_v true_a faith_n true_a belief_n true_a apostle_n and_o scripture_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o offer_n and_o so_o deny_v god_n and_o christ_n and_o his_o command_n and_o preach_v up_o sin_n and_o imperfection_n and_o the_o bawdy-house_n and_o will_v have_v his_o hearer_n rather_o go_v to_o a_o bawdy-house_n than_o to_o go_v among_o the_o people_n call_v quaker_n that_o preach_v up_o perfection_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n the_o one_o offer_v that_o make_v people_n perfect_a and_o sanctify_v they_o and_o must_v not_o people_n have_v faith_n in_o they_o and_o christ_n in_o they_o and_o the_o blood_n in_o they_o sprinkle_v their_o heart_n and_o conscience_n reader_n i_o pray_v thou_o read_v the_o scripture_n for_o they_o be_v give_v forth_o to_o be_v read_v and_o believe_v and_o not_o for_o presbyterian_o and_o independent_n to_o make_v a_o trade_n of_o they_o and_o keep_v people_n always_o to_o be_v hear_v they_o and_o pay_v of_o they_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n do_v not_o give_v forth_o the_o scripture_n for_o that_o end_n that_o suffer_v many_o of_o they_o to_o death_n for_o give_v they_o forth_o and_o so_o i_o pray_v thou_o reader_n do_v not_o fell_v thy_o wit_n and_o reason_n any_o long_o for_o they_o will_v put_v it_o up_o all_o in_o their_o poke_n and_o bag_n and_o then_o lead_v they_o into_o a_o ditch_n and_o barren_a mountain_n and_o so_o feed_v themselves_o of_o you_o and_o not_o feed_v you_o but_o the_o lord_n be_v come_v to_o gather_v his_o people_n from_o off_o the_o barren_a mountain_n and_o from_o their_o mouth_n that_o have_v feed_v themselves_o and_o not_o the_o flock_n and_o seek_v themselves_o and_o not_o the_o flock_n and_o make_v a_o prey_n upon_o you_o and_o seek_v for_o your_o wool_n &_o have_v bite_v you_o when_o you_o put_v not_o into_o their_o mouth_n and_o have_v seek_v for_o handful_n of_o barley_n and_o a_o piece_n of_o bread_n and_o have_v bear_v rule_n among_o you_o by_o their_o mean_n and_o have_v be_v the_o greedy_a dumb_a dog_n that_o can_v never_o have_v enough_o who_o have_v be_v slumber_v read_v jer._n 5._o isa._n 56._o mic._n 3._o ezek._n 14._o and_o so_o read_v how_o christ_n mark_v out_o those_o false_a teacher_n mat._n 23._o and_o the_o apostle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n so_o no_o more_o but_o my_o love_n that_o you_o may_v all_o come_v to_o know_v the_o freedom_n in_o christ_n from_o all_o the_o blind_a guide_n g._n f._n jo._n stubbs_n if_o that_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v three_o distinct_a separate_a person_n not_o simple_o one_o or_o agree_v simple_o as_o the_o priest_n say_v than_o how_o far_o distance_n be_v they_o from_o one_o another_o show_v we_o chapter_n and_o verse_n for_o this_o and_o make_v it_o good_a by_o scripture_n and_o let_v we_o see_v through_o all_o the_o scripture_n where_o ever_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n do_v give_v such_o title_n or_o name_n to_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o presbyterian_o and_o independent_n have_v do_v as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o this_o book_n the_o scripture_n say_v that_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v dwell_v in_o man_n &_o than_o you_o independent_a &_o presbyterian_a priest_n whether_o then_o that_o there_o be_v not_o three_o person_n in_o a_o man_n dwell_v in_o he_o that_o be_v a_o person_n for_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o your_o body_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o your_o body_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o that_o christ_n be_v in_o you_o except_o you_o be_v reprobate_n the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n confess_v by_o we_o call_v quaker_n and_o what_o we_o own_o touch_v the_o deity_n or_o godhead_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n the_o father_n of_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n and_o we_o in_o he_o and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n and_o we_o by_o he_o that_o there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o these_o three_o be_v one_o both_o in_o divinity_n divine_a substance_n and_o essence_n not_o three_o god_n nor_o separate_v being_n that_o they_o be_v call_v by_o several_a name_n in_o scripture_n as_o manifest_v to_o and_o in_o the_o saint_n for_o whatsoever_o may_v be_v know_v of_o god_n be_v manifest_a in_o man_n rom._n 1._o and_o their_o record_n receive_v as_o the_o full_a testimony_n of_o three_o by_o such_o as_o true_o know_v and_o own_o the_o record_n of_o the_o three_o in_o earth_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v eternal_o one_o in_o nature_n and_o be_v one_o infinite_a wisdom_n one_o power_n one_o love_n one_o light_n and_o life_n etc._n etc._n we_o never_o deny_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n as_o most_o injurious_o we_o have_v be_v accuse_v by_o some_o prejudice_v spirit_n who_o prejudicial_o in_o their_o perverse_a contest_v have_v seek_v occasion_n against_o we_o as_o chief_o because_o when_o some_o of_o we_o be_v in_o dispute_n with_o some_o presbyterian_o we_o can_v not_o own_o their_o unscriptural_a distinction_n and_o term_n touch_v the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o wit_n of_o their_o be_v incommunicable_a distinct_a separate_a person_n or_o subsistence_n whereas_o the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o spirit_n be_v one_o not_o to_o be_v compare_v to_o corruptible_a man_n nor_o to_o finite_a creature_n or_o person_n which_o be_v limitable_a and_o separable_a for_o the_o only_a wise_a god_n the_o creator_n of_o all_o who_o be_v one_o and_o his_o name_n one_o be_v infinite_a and_o inseparable_a deut._n 6.4_o zec._n 14.9_o and_o the_o father_n beget_v the_o son_n and_o the_o spirit_n be_v be_v scent_n we_o witness_v to_o and_o own_o as_o he_o say_v thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n i_o have_v beget_v thou_o psal._n 2.7_o heb._n 1.5_o and_o he_o have_v send_v his_o spirit_n into_o our_o heart_n gal._n 4.6_o and_o that_o the_o father_n be_v in_o the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n in_o the_o father_n yea_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n joh._n 1.18_o &_o chap._n 17.21_o 23._o so_o that_o they_o be_v neither_o divide_v nor_o separate_v be_v one_o and_o of_o one_o infinite_a nature_n and_o substance_n christ_n be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n the_o first_o bear_v of_o every_o creature_n by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v create_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n col._n 1._o yea_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o substance_n heb._n 1.3_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o it_o be_v in_o due_a time_n god_n be_v manifest_a in_o flesh_n 1_o tim._n 3.16_o as_o in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n god_n send_v his_o son_n gal._n 4._o and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v make_v manifest_a to_o destroy_v sin_n 1_o joh._n 3.8_o and_o a_o manifestation_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v give_v to_o every_o man_n to_o profit_v withal_o 1_o cor._n 12._o so_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n we_o confess_v to_o and_o own_o to_o be_v in_o unity_n and_o so_o the_o only_a true_a god_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n think_v it_o no_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n and_o yet_o as_o a_o son_n in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n and_o take_v on_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n phil._n 2.6_o 7._o in_o which_o state_n he_o say_v my_o father_n be_v great_a than_o i_o 1_o joh._n 14.28_o and_o he_o learned_a obedience_n through_o suffer_v and_o be_v make_v perfect_a and_o be_v become_v a_o everlasting_a high_a priest_n after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedeck_v and_o be_v the_o author_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n unto_o all_o they_o that_o obey_v he_o heb._n 5._o and_o god_n have_v give_v we_o eternal_a life_n in_o his_o son_n and_o unto_o we_o a_o child_n be_v bear_v and_o a_o son_n be_v give_v to_o govern_v who_o name_n be_v wonderful_a counsellor_n the_o mighty_a god_n the_o everlasting_a father_n the_o prince_n of_o peace_n isa._n 9.6_o and_o he_o be_v over_o all_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o rom._n 9.5_o even_o the_o true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n 1_o joh._n 5._o so_o that_o the_o deity_n or_o divinity_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o eternal_a infinite_a glorious_a state_n we_o real_o confess_v and_o
own_v have_v know_v his_o virtue_n and_o power_n to_o redeem_v we_o from_o our_o vain_a conversation_n and_o to_o save_v we_o from_o wrath_n to_o come_v and_o our_o knowledge_n of_o the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o our_o faith_n in_o and_o concern_v he_o and_o his_o name_n unto_o our_o salvation_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o the_o traditional_a name_n humane_a invention_n nor_o in_o philosophical_a term_n and_o nice_a school_n distinction_n derive_v from_o heathenish_a metaphysic_n which_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n man_n have_v put_v upon_o the_o godhead_n but_o in_o the_o live_a sense_n and_o feel_v of_o his_o divine_a power_n life_n and_o love_n reveal_v in_o we_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n whereby_o we_o have_v in_o his_o gift_n of_o divine_a light_n and_o spirit_n receive_v life_n and_o salvation_n from_o sin_n and_o death_n see_v matth._n 11.27_o luk._n 10.22_o matth._n 16.17_o rom._n 1.17_o ch_n 8.18_o gal._n 1.16_o eph._n 3.5_o 1_o pet._n 15.12_o ch_n 4.14_o ch_n 4.13_o ch_n 5.1_o 2_o pet._n 1_o 3._o matth._n 1.21_o also_o we_o judge_v that_o such_o expression_n and_o word_n as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v the_o true_a apostle_n and_o holy_a man_n mention_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v most_o meet_a to_o speak_v of_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o not_o the_o word_n of_o man_n wisdom_n or_o humane_a invention_n and_o devise_v distinction_n since_o the_o apostle_n day_n final_o we_o have_v receive_v a_o unction_n or_o anoint_v from_o the_o holy_a one_o which_o as_o it_o do_v teach_v we_o we_o know_v a_o continuance_n in_o the_o father_n and_o in_o the_o son_n 1_o joh._n 2._o and_o for_o who_o we_o know_v the_o father_n be_v well_o please_v and_o in_o he_o we_o know_v the_o true_a satisfaction_n justification_n and_o peace_n which_o all_o that_o abide_v in_o he_o enjoy_v and_o witness_v now_o unto_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n the_o one_o eternal_a word_n the_o only_a wise_a pure_a perfect_a god_n who_o be_v infinite_a omnipotent_a incomprehensible_a who_o give_v unto_o all_o life_n and_o be_v and_o be_v the_o life_n of_o all_o and_o the_o be_v of_o being_n who_o fill_v all_o in_o all_o with_o his_o presence_n unto_o who_o be_v glory_n now_o and_o evermore_o say_v our_o soul_n g._n whitehead_n and_o for_o definition_n of_o a_o person_n or_o what_o a_o person_n be_v we_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o go_v to_o popish_a and_o heathenish_a author_n as_o thomas_n aquinas_n aristotle_n and_o other_o as_o some_o of_o these_o presbyterian_a teacher_n and_o other_o have_v do_v when_o they_o have_v go_v about_o to_o demonstrate_v their_o doctrine_n of_o a_o trinity_n of_o distinct_a person_n in_o god_n and_o yet_o in_o contradiction_n for_o a_o cloak_n they_o pretend_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v their_o rule_n wherein_o there_o be_v no_o proof_n of_o their_o calling_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n three_o distinct_a person_n while_o the_o scripture_n be_v full_a and_o plain_a enough_o to_o prove_v define_v or_o show_v what_o a_o person_n be_v as_o namely_o a_o man_n or_o woman_n sometime_o the_o body_n the_o face_n or_o visible_a appearance_n of_o either_o etc._n etc._n but_o the_o infinite_a god_n be_v not_o like_a unto_o corruptible_a man_n see_v first_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n so_o call_v as_o to_o person_n esau_n take_v his_o wife_n his_o son_n and_o daughter_n and_o all_o the_o person_n of_o his_o house_n gen._n 36.16_o joseph_n be_v a_o goodly_a person_n gen._n 39.6_o the_o number_n of_o your_o person_n exod._n 16.16_o no_o uncircumcised_a person_n exod._n 12.48_o the_o person_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o of_o the_o mighty_a levit._n 19_o the_o guilty_a person_n unclean_a person_n numb_a 5.6_o a_o clean_a person_n numb_a 19.18_o thirty_o two_o thousand_o person_n in_o all_o of_o woman_n etc._n etc._n numb_a 31.35_o whosoever_o kill_v any_o person_n vers_fw-la 19_o numb_a 35.11_o 15_o 30._o josh._n 20._o 3_o 9_o abimelech_n the_o son_n of_o jerubbaal_n hire_v vain_a light_a person_n and_o slay_v his_o brethren_n the_o son_n of_o jerubbaal_n be_v threescore_o and_o ten_o person_n judg._n 9_o note_v hear_v that_o person_n die_v or_o be_v slay_v but_o can_v it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o immortal_a god_n who_o they_o distinguish_v into_o three_o several_a person_n that_o he_o ever_o die_v and_o though_o christ_n as_o concern_v the_o flesh_n or_o person_n be_v put_v to_o death_n so_o be_v not_o his_o divine_a life_n or_o godhead_n and_o again_o not_o a_o goodly_a person_n than_o saul_n 1_o sam._n 9.2_o david_n a_o comely_a person_n 1_o sam._n 16.18_o when_o wicked_a man_n have_v slay_v a_o righteous_a person_n 2_o sam._n 4.11_o they_o shall_v come_v at_o no_o dead_a person_n ezek._n 44.25_o or_o will_v he_o accept_v thy_o person_n mal._n 1.8_o these_o place_n before_o cite_v with_o many_o more_o be_v according_a to_o the_o english_a god_n accept_v not_o the_o person_n of_o prince_n job_n 34.19_o which_o in_o the_o hebrew_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d phene_n sarim_n i._n e._n facies_fw-la principum_fw-la the_o face_n of_o prince_n and_o the_o same_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d phene_n be_v in_o gen._n 1.2_o for_o the_o face_n of_o the_o deep_a see_v likewise_o gen._n 4.14_o job_n 38.30_o with_o many_o more_o place_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n so_o that_o the_o same_o word_n which_o be_v translate_v person_n have_v also_o relation_n to_o the_o outward_a face_n of_o man_n and_o thing_n how_o can_v it_o be_v either_o proper_a seasonable_a or_o good_a doctrine_n to_o preach_v the_o invisible_a incomprehensible_a god_n under_o these_o term_n of_o three_o distinct_a or_o separate_a person_n and_o whether_o it_o do_v not_o render_v god_n or_o represent_v the_o deity_n to_o be_v like_o visible_a man_n or_o finite_a creature_n that_o be_v comprehend_v in_o time_n yea_o or_o nay_o and_o have_v not_o this_o kind_n of_o represent_v the_o godhead_n produce_v those_o vain_a conception_n and_o imagination_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o ignorant_a from_o whence_o they_o have_v form_v the_o image_n and_o picture_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o holy_a ghost_n make_v by_o man_n of_o corrupt_a mind_n in_o the_o night_n of_o apostasy_n and_o popery_n to_o the_o great_a reproach_n and_o abuse_v of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o profession_n of_o christianity_n in_o the_o world_n see_v also_o more_o scripture_n touch_v person_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n as_o before_o judg._n 20.39_o 1_o sam._n 9.22_o &_o 22.18_o 22._o 2_o king_n 10.6_o 7._o 2_o chron._n 19.7_o psal._n 26.4_o psal._n 82.2_o prov._n 12.11_o prov._n 24.23_o jer._n 52.29_o 30._o lam._n 4.16_o ezek._n 17.17_o chron._n 27.13_o joh._n 4.11_o zeph._n 3.4_o mal._n 1.9_o and_o two_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n so_o call_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o word_n person_n or_o person_n be_v mention_v with_o the_o same_o acceptation_n as_o before_o in_o the_o old_a as_o for_o instance_n thou_o regard_v not_o the_o person_n of_o man_n matth._n 22.16_o mar._n 12.14_o luk._n 20.21_o in_o the_o greek_a it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i._n e._n faciem_fw-la hominum_fw-la the_o face_n of_o man_n in_o the_o hebrew_n it_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d phene_n haadam_n do_v not_o this_o still_o relate_v to_o the_o outward_a or_o visible_a appearance_n of_o man_n see_v also_o matth._n 27.24_o 1_o cor._n 5.13_o gal._n 2.6_o eph._n 5.5_o heb._n 12.16_o 2_o pet._n 2.5_o luk._n 15.7_o act._n 10.34_o &_o 17.17_o rom._n 2.11_o judas_n 16._o 2_o cor._n 1.11_o eph._n 6.9_o col._n 3.25_o 1_o tim._n 1.10_o jam._n 2.1_o 9_o 1_o pet._n 1.17_o 2_o pet._n 3.11_o in_o all_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o word_n person_n be_v attribute_v to_o man_n etc._n etc._n and_o as_o to_o that_o of_o 2_o cor._n 2.10_o where_o some_o of_o our_o english_a copy_n have_v it_o to_o who_o i_o forgive_v it_o for_o your_o sake_n forgive_v i_o it_o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n the_o word_n in_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v translate_v in_o fancy_n christi_fw-la in_o the_o face_n of_o christ_n and_o some_o of_o the_o latin_n have_v it_o in_o conspectu_fw-la christi_fw-la in_o the_o sight_n of_o christ._n and_o that_o in_o heb._n 1.13_o where_o speak_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o some_o of_o the_o english_a we_o have_v it_o thus_o who_o be_v the_o brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o person_n in_o the_o greek_a it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i._n e._n et_fw-la character_n substantiae_fw-la ejus_fw-la and_o the_o character_n of_o his_o substance_n it_o be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o his_o person_n as_o also_o in_o heb._n 11.1_o faith_n be_v the_o substance_n of_o thing_n hope_v for_o the_o same_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v
freedom_n from_o sin_n or_o transgression_n of_o the_o law_n whilst_o here_o and_o then_o judge_v whether_o imperfection_n and_o sin_n be_v evangelical_n sure_o all_o who_o have_v any_o true_a spiritual_a knowledge_n of_o the_o law_n gospel_n and_o new_a birth_n may_v easy_o see_v beyond_o this_o man_n and_o also_o see_v his_o ignorance_n and_o contradiction_n to_o himself_o for_o the_o state_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v inferior_a to_o that_o under_o the_o law_n that_o it_o exceed_v for_o god_n find_v fault_n with_o his_o people_n under_o the_o first_o covenant_n see_v it_o needful_a to_o establish_v a_o second_o in_o which_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n destroy_v sin_n and_o the_o devil_n work_n take_v it_o away_o and_o make_v a_o end_n of_o it_o and_o remember_v sin_n no_o more_o and_o so_o perfection_n be_v to_o be_v know_v by_o the_o enjoyer_n and_o subject_n of_o this_o covenant_n as_o also_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o short_a of_o the_o law_n nor_o the_o righteousness_n of_o it_o for_o christ_n come_v not_o to_o destroy_v the_o law_n but_o to_o fullfil_v it_o and_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n be_v so_o far_o from_o come_v short_a of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o law_n that_o true_a believer_n do_v not_o make_v void_a the_o law_n through_o faith_n but_o establish_v it_o and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o christ_n make_v free_a from_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n so_o that_o the_o righteousness_n and_o obedience_n bring_v forth_o in_o the_o true_a and_o live_a faith_n which_o stand_v in_o the_o power_n of_o god_n do_v answer_v the_o righteous_a law_n of_o god_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o exceed_v and_o surpass_v all_o self-righteousness_n and_o all_o man_n outward_a imitation_n of_o the_o law_n in_o the_o letter_n of_o it_o but_o this_o none_o know_v but_o those_o who_o come_v to_o own_o the_o light_n and_o spirit_n of_o faith_n inward_a and_o the_o law_n of_o it_o it_o be_v not_o know_v to_o such_o as_o these_o man_n who_o count_v the_o light_n within_o a_o idol_n and_o reckon_v that_o it_o guide_v contrary_a to_o the_o light_n of_o the_o word_n and_o spirit_n as_o in_o their_o page_n 15._o &_o 53._o but_o as_o to_o his_o perfection_n of_o part_n but_o not_o of_o degree_n this_o be_v strange_a doctrine_n for_o if_o it_o be_v a_o perfection_n of_o part_n but_o not_o of_o degree_n what_o part_n be_v they_o and_o wherein_o consist_v their_o perfection_n not_o of_o degree_n but_o if_o he_o have_v say_v there_o be_v a_o perfection_n of_o kind_n but_o not_o in_o the_o full_a height_n or_o high_a degree_n of_o it_o than_o he_o have_v say_v something_o though_o to_o his_o own_o contradiction_n but_o where_o he_o add_v that_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o work_n of_o grace_n though_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v not_o perfect_a in_o regard_n of_o ourselves_o but_o by_o degree_n be_v carry_v on_o unto_o further_a perfection_n now_o in_o contradiction_n to_o himself_o he_o have_v confess_v the_o work_n of_o god_n by_o degree_n carry_v on_o unto_o further_a perfection_n which_o if_o so_o here_o be_v both_o perfection_n in_o its_o degree_n which_o vary_v not_o the_o property_n or_o kind_n as_o also_o the_o work_n of_o grace_n in_o its_o carry_v on_o unto_o further_a perfection_n so_o then_o there_o be_v a_o time_n of_o perfect_a or_o work_v the_o work_n of_o grace_n in_o order_n to_o perfection_n and_o a_o time_n wherein_o it_o come_v to_o be_v wrought_v and_o perfect_v and_o now_o the_o kind_n and_o nature_n of_o that_o perfection_n which_o we_o believe_v and_o plead_v for_o be_v that_o which_o god_n require_v and_o christ_n work_v who_o do_v the_o father_n will_n therein_o in_o all_o that_o true_o believe_v the_o which_o consist_v in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n not_o in_o any_o imagine_a conceit_a or_o self-righteousness_n bring_v forth_o in_o man_n will_n which_o be_v not_o real_a nor_o perfect_a either_o in_o man_n will-worshipping_a self-performing_a or_o application_n which_o be_v neither_o from_o live_a motion_n of_o true_a faith_n nor_o evidence_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n within_o but_o from_o man_n self-will_n imagination_n and_o tradition_n and_o whereas_o t._n v._o tell_v of_o some_o that_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n intend_v by_o his_o ministry_n herein_o again_o he_o have_v contradict_v himself_o for_o establishment_n in_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n be_v a_o high_a state_n of_o perfection_n and_o such_o admit_v not_o of_o his_o preach_v up_o sin_n nor_o of_o move_v from_o any_o of_o truth_n be_v way_n which_o his_o doctrine_n for_o sin_n and_o imperfection_n term_v of_o life_n do_v not_o at_o all_o tend_v too_o but_o rather_o to_o keep_v people_n in_o thraldom_n and_o captivity_n and_o in_o a_o waver_a toss_a estate_n in_o the_o way_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v all_o contrary_a to_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n for_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n do_v not_o admit_v of_o a_o continuance_n in_o the_o way_n of_o error_n either_o in_o principle_n or_o practice_n and_o whereas_o t._n v._o complain_v so_o sad_o that_o two_o of_o his_o friend_n mother_n and_o daughter_n that_o go_v off_o to_o the_o quaker_n in_o his_o fortnight_n absence_n it_o appear_v that_o they_o be_v not_o establish_v by_o he_o as_o also_o that_o he_o have_v lead_v his_o hearer_n to_o depend_v more_o upon_o himself_o than_o upon_o the_o teach_n of_o god_n or_o his_o light_n within_o which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o many_n waver_a and_o uncertainty_n who_o have_v follow_v he_o so_o that_o if_o their_o teacher_n or_o shepherd_n t._n v._o remove_v into_o a_o corner_n or_o if_o upon_o persecution_n he_o shall_v flee_v or_o hide_v himself_o for_o fear_n as_o many_o of_o they_o have_v do_v than_o his_o flock_n or_o at_o least_o many_o of_o they_o will_v be_v liable_a to_o be_v scatter_v but_o who_o come_v to_o wait_v upon_o god_n in_o his_o light_n and_o spirit_n to_o know_v he_o their_o shepherd_n and_o leader_n their_o teacher_n will_v not_o be_v remove_v into_o a_o corner_n nor_o their_o shepherd_n flee_v from_o they_o and_o whereas_o t._n v._o further_o add_v in_o a_o angry_a revile_v manner_n against_o the_o mother_n and_o daughter_n that_o the_o mother_n shall_v so_o much_o indulge_v a_o perverse_a will_n in_o she_o unbefitting_a a_o parent_n that_o it_o be_v like_a to_o prove_v the_o destruction_n of_o mother_n and_o child_n etc._n etc._n his_o thus_o open_o revile_v of_o they_o in_o print_n may_v tend_v to_o set_v they_o further_o against_o he_o then_o ever_o and_o now_o they_o may_v see_v more_o of_o his_o spirit_n than_o before_o and_o if_o they_o abide_v in_o the_o light_n to_o which_o their_o mind_n have_v be_v direct_v and_o by_o which_o their_o understanding_n have_v be_v open_v since_o they_o come_v among_o we_o they_o will_v further_o feel_v and_o see_v cause_n for_o ever_o to_o bless_v the_o lord_n for_o bring_v they_o out_o from_o among_o such_o false_a teacher_n and_o minister_n of_o sin_n and_o imperfection_n as_o t.u._n and_o his_o brethren_n have_v manifest_v themselves_o to_o be_v as_o also_o see_v what_o follow_v from_o his_o corrupt_a heart_n and_o unclean_a spirit_n it_o may_v set_v all_o sober_a mind_n and_o modest_a person_n against_o he_o and_o his_o doctrine_n more_o than_o ever_o as_o they_o take_v a_o view_n thereof_o which_o most_o sordid_a revile_v of_o his_o be_v the_o chief_a cause_n and_o occasion_n of_o these_o controversy_n between_o we_o t._n v._o i_o acknowledge_v i_o do_v say_v it_o be_v worse_a to_o go_v to_o the_o quaker_n meettings_n than_o to_o a_o bawdy-house_n because_o the_o defilement_n of_o the_o soul_n with_o their_o damnable_a error_n be_v more_o deep_a and_o more_o hard_a to_o be_v wash_v off_o than_o the_o defilement_n of_o whoredom_n or_o adultery_n answ._n to_o which_o i_o say_v let_v all_o soberminded_n reader_n but_o mark_v the_o wickedness_n and_o grosseness_n of_o this_o man_n doctrine_n thus_o to_o set_v a_o esteem_n of_o bawdy-house_n above_o our_o meeting_n what_o but_o impudence_n and_o wickedness_n can_v have_v vent_v such_o doctrine_n public_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o he_o can_v so_o plead_v and_o contend_v for_o sin_n and_o imperfection_n whilst_o he_o deem_v it_o worse_o to_o go_v to_o our_o meeting_n where_o sin_n wickedness_n and_o uncleanness_n be_v open_o preach_v against_o than_o to_o go_v to_o a_o bawdy-house_n where_o it_o be_v commit_v what_o abominable_a doctrine_n be_v this_o and_o infamy_n and_o a_o ground_n of_o suspicion_n against_o himself_o have_v he_o give_v hereby_o and_o how_o contrary_a to_o the_o spirit_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o true_a minister_n this_o of_o he_o be_v for_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o such_o doctrine_n that_o they_o reckon_v such_o thing_n not_o meet_v to_o be_v
complace_v love_n in_o god_n be_v there_o any_o love_n in_o god_n that_o be_v not_o well_o please_v unto_o himself_o or_o that_o be_v not_o of_o his_o good_a will_n or_o benevolence_n which_o be_v confess_v to_o be_v save_v or_o if_o this_o love_n of_o complacency_n so_o term_v be_v the_o effect_n of_o christ_n satisfaction_n and_o not_o the_o other_o than_o be_v it_o not_o in_o be_v in_o god_n before_o but_o if_o you_o say_v his_o love_n of_o benevolence_n so_o call_v or_o good_a will_n be_v only_o intend_v for_o a_o few_o or_o a_o certain_a select_a number_n and_o for_o they_o only_o he_o receive_v satisfaction_n or_o be_v pacify_v do_v not_o your_o doctrine_n herein_o render_v he_o partial_a and_o unequal_a in_o his_o way_n whereas_o he_o will_v not_o the_o death_n of_o sinner_n but_o rather_o their_o return_n that_o they_o may_v live_v and_o god_n love_n good_a will_n patience_n long-suffering_a forbearance_n and_o goodness_n be_v towards_o all_o in_o the_o first_o place_n till_o man_n reject_v it_o and_o be_v manifest_a in_o christ_n towards_o mankind_n and_o evident_o testify_v both_o in_o his_o suffering_n die_v for_o all_o man_n and_o give_v himself_o a_o ransom_n for_o all_o to_o be_v testify_v of_o in_o due_a time_n and_o that_o by_o his_o righteousness_n the_o free_a gift_n of_o god_n come_v upon_o all_o man_n it_o be_v not_o say_v in_o scripture_n that_o god_n love_n of_o benevolence_n be_v to_o the_o elect_a only_o or_o that_o christ_n die_v for_o a_o few_o only_a or_o be_v give_v a_o ransom_n for_o believer_n only_o but_o for_o all_o though_o all_o do_v not_o accept_v of_o the_o good_a will_n of_o god_n towards_o they_o nor_o of_o the_o offer_n or_o price_n which_o will_v purchase_v they_o to_o god_n out_o of_o their_o sin_n and_o thraldom_n t._n v._o whether_o be_v it_o any_o absurdity_n to_o say_v that_o god_n shall_v be_v at_o the_o charge_n of_o his_o own_o satisfaction_n job_n 33.24_o i_o have_v find_v a_o ransom_n reply_n in_o that_o place_n cite_v he_o shall_v have_v set_v down_o all_o the_o verse_n where_o it_o be_v say_v he_o be_v gracious_a unto_o he_o and_o say_v deliver_v he_o from_o go_v down_o to_o the_o pit_n i_o have_v find_v a_o ransom_n or_o a_o atonement_n so_o that_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o this_o ransom_n be_v all_o from_o the_o graciousness_n of_o god_n manifest_a in_o god_n deliver_v man_n from_o go_v down_o to_o the_o pit_n after_o that_o man_n be_v chastened_a with_o pain_n vers_fw-la 19_o 20._o and_o his_o flesh_n consume_v under_o the_o sense_n of_o god_n judgement_n than_o a_o ransom_n be_v find_v through_o god_n graciousness_n to_o he_o who_o deliver_v his_o soul_n from_o go_v into_o the_o pit_n that_o his_o life_n shall_v see_v the_o light_n v_o 28._o lo_o all_o these_o thing_n oftentimes_o work_v god_n with_o man_n to_o bring_v back_o his_o soul_n from_o the_o pit_n to_o be_v enlighten_v with_o the_o light_n of_o the_o live_n vers_fw-la 29_o 30._o sure_o elihu_n know_v more_o of_o god_n deal_n and_o of_o his_o inlightning_n thereby_o than_o they_o do_v who_o put_v his_o work_n a_o far_o off_o from_o they_o and_o oppose_v his_o light_n within_o be_v neither_o willing_a to_o wait_v under_o his_o correction_n nor_o bear_v his_o judgement_n till_o they_o feel_v his_o graciousness_n and_o partake_v of_o a_o ransom_n thereby_o from_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n death_n and_o hell_n and_o to_o tell_v of_o god_n be_v at_o the_o charge_n of_o his_o own_o satisfaction_n how_o do_v that_o agree_v with_o the_o former_a doctrine_n that_o he_o never_o will_v nor_o can_v pardon_n without_o satisfaction_n make_v etc._n etc._n if_o the_o graciousness_n and_o satisfaction_n be_v in_o himself_o before_o sure_o what_o be_v perform_v by_o christ_n for_o man_n be_v a_o effect_n of_o god_n graciousness_n to_o bring_v man_n to_o himself_o and_o it_o be_v without_o controversy_n that_o all_o that_o be_v in_o god_n and_o all_o the_o gift_n and_o benefit_n proceed_v from_o he_o to_o man-ward_n as_o also_o all_o his_o work_n be_v acceptable_a and_o well_o please_v to_o himself_o but_o his_o work_n man_n ought_v not_o to_o put_v a_o far_o off_o from_o himself_o since_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v for_o man_n deliverance_n and_o preservation_n of_o his_o soul_n out_o of_o the_o pit_n god_n work_v with_o man_n and_o he_o have_v wrought_v all_o our_o work_n in_o we_o isa._n 26._o and_o as_o for_o believe_v and_o obey_v his_o precept_n as_o a_o concur_v cause_n of_o remission_n t.u._n call_v this_o rank_a popery_n as_o import_v justification_n by_o work_n pardon_n reply_n what_o be_v say_v in_o that_o case_n be_v sufficient_o prove_v from_o scriptute_fw-la and_o not_o at_o all_o refute_v by_o t._n v._n when_o upon_o man_n return_n to_o god_n forsake_v his_o evil_a way_n and_o believe_v in_o christ_n the_o lord_n have_v promise_v pardon_n not_o to_o turn_v away_o his_o face_n but_o to_o show_v mercy_n etc._n etc._n 2_o chron._n 30.9_o isa._n 55.7_o jer._n 31.31_o 33_o 34._o joh._n 3.16_o act_n 10.34_o this_o be_v no_o popery_n at_o all_o to_o assert_v scripture_n and_o to_o confess_v the_o receive_n of_o remission_n through_o repentance_n and_o justification_n through_o faith_n and_o that_o god_n have_v wrought_v all_o our_o work_n in_o we_o and_o this_o we_o confess_v to_o and_o true_o own_o though_o unjust_o we_o be_v accuse_v for_o popery_n and_o if_o grace_n and_o justice_n be_v very_o well_o consistent_a as_o be_v confess_v from_o rom._n 3.24_o 25_o 26._o i_o ask_v how_o this_o consist_v with_o your_o sense_n of_o vindictive_a justice_n else_o where_o and_o the_o lord_n say_v i_o be_o a_o just_a god_n and_o a_o saviour_n there_o be_v none_o beside_o i_o isa._n 45.21_o so_o he_o that_o be_v a_o just_a god_n be_v a_o saviour_n and_o in_o this_o be_v manifest_v the_o love_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o because_o god_n send_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n into_o the_o world_n that_o we_o may_v live_v through_o he_o herein_o be_v love_n not_o that_o we_o love_v god_n but_o that_o he_o love_v we_o and_o send_v his_o son_n to_o be_v a_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n 1_o joh._n 4.9_o 10._o now_o we_o know_v the_o life_n and_o power_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v partake_v both_o of_o the_o save_a virtue_n and_o bless_a effect_n of_o his_o suffering_n in_o the_o fellowship_n thereof_o in_o spirit_n as_o also_o of_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o mediation_n and_o intercession_n we_o must_v needs_o confess_v he_o in_o all_o and_o the_o love_n and_o graciousness_n of_o god_n through_o all_o and_o whereas_o t._n v._o accuse_v w._n p._n that_o his_o enumerate_v some_o of_o the_o end_n of_o christ_n mission_n into_o the_o world_n do_v reach_v no_o high_a than_o by_o his_o set_v he_o forth_o as_o a_o perfect_a example_n reply_n herein_o he_o have_v wrong_v and_o belie_v w.p._n for_o in_o his_o book_n pag._n 9.16_o 17_o 18_o 19_o w._n p._n bring_v several_a scripture_n both_o to_o prove_v god_n love_n and_o graciousness_n in_o give_v christ_n as_o also_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n to_o man_n for_o his_o reconciliation_n redemption_n through_o his_o blood_n salvation_n and_o eternal_a life_n through_o he_o which_o be_v high_o or_o more_o than_o be_v a_o bare_a example_n for_o hereby_o its_o evident_a that_o he_o be_v not_o only_o a_o perfect_a live_a example_n of_o good_a to_o man_n but_o a_o minister_n and_o giver_n of_o it_o as_o also_o the_o worker_n and_o author_n of_o man_n salvation_n as_o also_o w._n p._n in_o his_o 19_o pag._n confess_v that_o christ_n as_o be_v attribute_v in_o his_o doctrine_n life_n miracle_n death_n and_o suffering_n to_o god_n as_o the_o gift_n and_o expression_n of_o his_o eternal_a love_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n 1._o in_o abolish_n that_o other_o covenant_n which_o consist_v in_o external_n and_o shadowy_a ordinance_n and_o that_o make_v none_o clean_a as_o concern_v the_o conscience_n 2_o in_o promulgate_a his_o message_n of_o a_o most_o free_a and_o universal_a tender_a of_o life_n and_o salvation_n unto_o all_o they_o that_o believe_v and_o follow_v he_o the_o light_n in_o all_o his_o righteousness_n the_o very_a end_n of_o his_o appearance_n be_v to_o destroy_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o which_o every_o man_n come_v to_o experiment_n as_o he_o walk_v in_o a_o holy_a subjection_n to_o that_o measure_n of_o light_n and_o grace_n wherewith_o the_o fullness_n have_v enlighten_v he_o 3_o in_o second_v his_o doctrine_n with_o sign_n miracle_n and_o a_o most_o innocent_a self-denying_a life_n 4thly_a in_o ratify_v and_o confirm_v all_o with_o great_a love_n and_o holy_a resignation_n by_o the_o offering_n up_o of_o his_o body_n to_o be_v crucify_a by_o wicked_a hand_n who_o be_v now_o ascend_v far_o above_o all_o
believer_n and_o if_o he_o love_v his_o image_n in_o his_o people_n free_o than_o he_o be_v satisfy_v in_o his_o own_o image_n and_o that_o which_o bring_v to_o know_v and_o enjoy_v this_o image_n and_o the_o renew_n of_o it_o within_o be_v that_o which_o bring_v into_o love_n and_o union_n with_o god_n which_o be_v his_o divine_a spirit_n and_o power_n that_o renew_v man_n into_o the_o heavenly_a image_n and_o righteousness_n of_o the_o everlasting_a god_n which_o they_o that_o enjoy_v have_v the_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n and_o from_o thence_o can_v present_v live_v sacrifice_n unto_o god_n to_o his_o eternal_a praise_n and_o to_o t._n v'_v say_v that_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o punish_v for_o we_o to_o satisfy_v god_n justice_n it_o will_v follow_v from_o w._n p_o his_o word_n that_o christ_n shall_v be_v a_o sinner_n and_o that_o he_o be_v punish_v for_o his_o own_o sin_n reply_n that_o be_v a_o blasphemous_a consequence_n indeed_o but_o not_o true_o charge_v upon_o w._n p._n for_o he_o never_o intend_v by_o his_o word_n to_o render_v christ_n a_o sinner_n nor_o that_o he_o be_v punish_v for_o his_o own_o sin_n for_o he_o never_o sin_v but_o he_o be_v punish_v and_o suffer_v by_o sinner_n who_o by_o wicked_a hand_n and_o so_o by_o their_o injustice_n put_v he_o to_o death_n and_o under_o the_o buden_a and_o weight_n of_o their_o transgression_n he_o suffer_v as_o also_o his_o tender_a spirit_n that_o make_v intercession_n and_o suffer_v for_o transgressor_n from_o a_o foresight_n of_o the_o wrath_n that_o shall_v come_v upon_o the_o rebellious_a and_o be_v not_o the_o wicked_a the_o instrument_n that_o wound_v bruise_a and_o afflict_v he_o and_o that_o oppress_a his_o righteous_a soul_n and_o do_v not_o his_o innocent_a life_n and_o righteous_a soul_n suffer_v under_o a_o great_a oppression_n and_o weight_n of_o man_n transgression_n when_o he_o be_v in_o his_o agony_n and_o sweat_v drop_n of_o blood_n before_o his_o be_v crucify_a and_o so_o be_v not_o his_o suffer_a twofold_n both_o inward_a and_o outward_a and_o then_o if_o so_o that_o the_o pure_a life_n and_o holy_a spirit_n suffer_v as_o bear_v the_o burden_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o if_o the_o godhead_n be_v in_o christ_n so_o near_o unite_v as_o to_o bear_v up_o the_o manhood_n under_o the_o suffer_a as_o be_v confess_v how_o then_o can_v it_o be_v deem_v that_o god_n inflict_v the_o punishment_n of_o eternal_a wrath_n or_o vengeance_n on_o his_o son_n sure_o his_o permit_v wicked_a man_n by_o their_o wicked_a hand_n to_o punish_v he_o with_o a_o temporal_a suffer_v and_o death_n can_v not_o be_v his_o eternal_a wrath_n or_o vengeance_n which_o be_v suppose_v to_o answer_n and_o satisfy_v divine_a justice_n for_o man_n and_o so_o to_o acquit_v man_n living_n and_o die_v in_o sin_n a_o great_a error_n from_o eternal_a wrath_n whereas_o christ_n jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o his_o love_n be_v it_o not_o inconsistent_a to_o say_v that_o god_n justice_n do_v punish_v or_o execute_v wrath_n upon_o his_o love_n see_v that_o it_o be_v confess_v that_o grace_n and_o justice_n be_v very_o well_o consistent_a and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o free_a exercise_n both_o of_o justice_n and_o love_n without_o force_n or_o compulsion_n how_o do_v t.u._n his_o matter_n hang_v together_o let_v the_o moderate_a judge_n but_o have_v he_o state_v it_o in_o the_o language_n and_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n there_o have_v not_o appear_v this_o contrariety_n nor_o opposition_n either_o between_o we_o or_o with_o himself_o for_o scripture-account_n concern_v christ_n and_o his_o suffering_n for_o sinner_n both_o inward_a and_o outward_a i_o do_v own_o and_o confess_v to_o and_o have_v a_o reverend_a esteem_n of_o all_o his_o suffering_n and_o the_o worth_n thereof_o and_o do_v great_o prize_v his_o meekness_n and_o humility_n who_o have_v free_o condescend_v according_a to_o the_o good_a will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n not_o from_o wrath_n nor_o compulsion_n to_o offer_v himself_o a_o lamb_n without_o spot_n to_o god_n to_o bear_v our_o grief_n and_o sorrow_n yet_o say_v the_o prophet_n isaiah_n chap._n 53_o we_o do_v esteem_v he_o strike_v smite_v of_o god_n and_o afflict_v but_o he_o be_v wound_v for_o our_o transgression_n he_o be_v bruise_v for_o our_o iniquity_n the_o chastisement_n of_o our_o peace_n be_v upon_o he_o and_o with_o his_o stripe_n we_o be_v heal_v he_o be_v oppress_v he_o be_v afflict_v yet_o he_o open_v not_o his_o mouth_n he_o be_v bring_v as_o a_o lamb_n to_o the_o slaughter_n he_o make_v his_o grave_n with_o the_o wicked_a and_o with_o the_o rich_a in_o his_o death_n because_o he_o have_v not_o do_v no_o violence_n neither_o be_v any_o deceit_n in_o his_o mouth_n yet_o it_o please_v the_o lord_n to_o bruise_v he_o he_o he_o have_v put_v he_o to_o grief_n when_o thou_o shall_v make_v his_o soul_n a_o offer_n for_o sin_n he_o shall_v see_v his_o seed_n he_o shall_v prolong_v his_o day_n and_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v prosper_v in_o his_o hand_n this_o be_v he_o that_o have_v be_v despise_v and_o reject_v of_o man_n this_o be_v he_o who_o have_v be_v as_o a_o lamb_n slay_v from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n this_o be_v he_o man_n have_v evil_o entreat_v and_o evil_o requite_v for_o his_o kindness_n and_o good_a will_n that_o he_o have_v show_v forth_o towards_o they_o this_o be_v he_o who_o they_o have_v cause_v to_o suffer_v by_o their_o iniquity_n and_o so_o thereby_o have_v show_v great_a unworthiness_n and_o ingratitude_n towards_o he_o and_o his_o father_n who_o pleasure_n and_o good_a will_v he_o come_v to_o perform_v both_o in_o his_o be_v deliver_v up_o to_o undergo_v affliction_n and_o bruise_n and_o many_o hard_a suffering_n for_o mankind_n and_o sure_o god_n be_v in_o he_o reconcile_a the_o world_n even_o in_o and_o through_o that_o low_a and_o suffer_a state_n which_o the_o righteous_a seed_n and_o renown_a plant_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v undergo_v but_o now_o what_o effect_n have_v all_o this_o love_n tenderness_n and_o compassion_n of_o god_n in_o and_o through_o christ_n upon_o and_o in_o man_n whilst_o sin_n transgression_n and_o imperfection_n term_v of_o life_n be_v plead_v for_o by_o the_o priest_n sure_o they_o herein_o do_v not_o make_v a_o right_a use_n of_o christ_n suffer_v but_o both_o reject_v he_o and_o the_o end_v thereof_o and_o this_o be_v not_o the_o use_n that_o the_o true_a minister_n do_v make_v thereof_o for_o they_o witness_v that_o he_o die_v for_o all_o that_o as_o many_o as_o live_v shall_v not_o live_v unto_o themselves_o but_o unto_o he_o that_o die_v and_o rise_v again_o 2_o cor._n 5.15_o and_o his_o own_o self_n bear_v our_o sin_n in_o his_o body_n on_o the_o tree_n that_o we_o be_v dead_a to_o sin_n shall_v live_v to_o righteousness_n this_o be_v not_o a_o live_n to_o sin_n nor_o plead_v for_o imperfectiom_n as_o t._n v._o have_v do_v who_o far_o add_v viz._n the_o 7_o the_o consequence_n be_v childish_a and_o a_o shame_n that_o a_o man_n that_o pretend_v to_o any_o brain_n shall_v mention_v it_o that_o though_o christ_n have_v satisfy_v for_o we_o the_o debt_n remain_v still_o to_o christ_n pag._n 66._o reply_n be_v this_o such_o a_o childish_a shameful_a or_o brainless_a consequence_n that_o the_o debt_n remain_v still_o to_o christ_n have_v not_o t.u._n herein_o show_v his_o ignorance_n of_o scripture_n for_o aught_o nor_o christ_n to_o be_v obey_v who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n to_o they_o that_o obey_v he_o heb._n 5._o and_o we_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n to_o god_n but_o under_o the_o law_n to_o christ_n and_o to_o what_o end_n be_v his_o spiritual_a law_n write_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o inward_a part_n but_o to_o be_v obey_v and_o we_o be_v debtor_n not_o to_o the_o flesh_n to_o live_v after_o the_o flesh_n rom._n 8.12_o to_o what_o then_o but_o to_o live_v after_o the_o spirit_n and_o through_o it_o to_o mortify_v the_o deed_n of_o the_o body_n vers_fw-la 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10_o 11._o the_o apostle_n be_v far_o from_o plead_v for_o sin_n and_o imperfection_n as_o priest_n do_v for_o which_o god_n will_v judge_v they_o by_o jesus_n christ_n to_o who_o all_o judgement_n be_v commit_v who_o have_v power_n to_o proclaim_v the_o day_n of_o vengeance_n as_o well_o as_o the_o acceptable_a year_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o truth_n of_o it_o be_v t.u._n have_v confess_v to_o what_o w._n p._n have_v write_v in_o many_o place_n but_o to_o his_o own_o contradiction_n but_o here_o he_o fall_v a_o rail_a and_o vilify_a he_o with_o such_o term_n as_o abominable_a worm_n etc._n etc._n he_o have_v not_o at_o all_o deal_v fair_o or_o honest_o
righteous_a whilst_o such_o as_o if_o god_n righteousness_n or_o workmanship_n be_v impure_a this_o doctrine_n have_v lead_v many_o in_o the_o way_n to_o hell_n and_o destruction_n but_o t.u._n in_o 2_o cor._n 5._o shall_v have_v read_v vers_fw-la 17._o if_o any_o man_n be_v in_o christ_n he_o be_v a_o new_a creature_n old_a thing_n be_v pass_v away_o behold_v all_o thing_n be_v become_v new_a which_o be_v a_o real_a change_n in_o that_o man_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n from_o sin_n and_o transgression_n and_o not_o a_o justification_n therein_o for_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n both_o discover_v to_o man_n his_o sin_n and_o reprove_v he_o as_o a_o transgressor_n and_o one_o guilty_a whilst_o therein_o and_o sure_o god_n do_v not_o accept_v of_o man_n as_o his_o own_o righteousness_n and_o in_o christ_n whilst_o his_o spirit_n in_o they_o judge_n they_o to_o be_v both_o unrighteous_a and_o out_o of_o christ_n for_o if_o he_o do_v that_o be_v to_o make_v god_n contradict_v himself_o and_o to_o speak_v quite_o contrary_a to_o his_o own_o spirit_n which_o be_v very_o absurd_a and_o blasphemous_a to_o assert_v but_o have_v t.u._n right_o mind_v and_o understand_v that_o of_o rom._n 8.1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o he_o may_v have_v see_v how_o contrary_a it_o be_v to_o his_o doctrine_n before_o and_o himself_o therein_o confute_v for_o one_a they_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n and_o it_o be_v to_o such_o only_a to_o who_o there_o be_v no_o condemnation_n therefore_o justification_n and_o this_o be_v not_o a_o sinful_a imperfect_a or_o guilty_a state_n 2_o the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o christ_n jesus_n have_v make_v such_o free_a from_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n 3_o god_n send_v his_o son_n to_o condemn_v sin_n in_o the_o flesh_n be_v not_o to_o look_v upon_o man_n justify_v in_o the_o sinful_a state_n or_o whilst_o he_o walk_v after_o the_o flesh._n but_o 4thly_a that_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o law_n may_v be_v fulfil_v in_o such_o who_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n and_o this_o do_v absolute_o confute_v t.u._n and_o his_o brethren_n and_o whereas_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o doctrine_n of_o guilty_a person_n be_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n he_o cit_v rom._n 4.6_o 7._o where_o it_o be_v say_v david_n describe_v the_o blessedness_n of_o that_o man_n to_o who_o god_n impute_v righteousness_n without_o work_n to_o which_o i_o say_v not_o without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o true_a and_o live_a faith_n in_o jesus_n nor_o yet_o without_o a_o subjection_n to_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n but_o without_o that_o the_o work_n or_o deed_n of_o the_o law_n of_o work_n chap._n 3.19_o 20_o 21_o 24_o 25_o 26_o 27_o 28._o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o exclude_v the_o work_n obedience_n or_o righteousness_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n from_o a_o justify_v state_n for_o if_o paul_n have_v so_o do_v it_o have_v be_v contrary_a to_o james_n his_o testimony_n who_o say_v be_v not_o our_o father_n abraham_n justify_v by_o work_n when_o he_o have_v offer_v up_o isaac_n see_v jam._n 2._o and_o abraham_n believe_v god_n and_o it_o be_v count_v to_o he_o for_o righteousness_n we_o say_v that_o faith_n be_v reckon_v to_o abraham_n for_o righteousness_n rom._n 4.3_o 9_o which_o faith_n be_v not_o without_o its_o own_o work_n although_o it_o be_v not_o the_o work_v of_o the_o law_n as_o circumcision_n and_o other_o that_o be_v type_n or_o sign_n wherein_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n do_v not_o consist_v which_o they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o uncircumcision_n as_o the_o gentile_n that_o be_v the_o ungodly_a speak_v of_o rom._n 4.5_o 11._o chap._n 3.29_o do_v receive_v through_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o become_v real_o partaker_n thereof_o be_v justify_v from_o all_o those_o thing_n from_o which_o they_o can_v not_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o so_o such_o be_v justify_v or_o make_v just_o or_o true_o so_o accept_v of_o god_n not_o in_o sin_n or_o ungodliness_n but_o as_o redeem_a out_o of_o it_o and_o sanctify_v from_o it_o see_v 1_o cor._n 6.11_o and_o bless_v be_v they_o who_o iniquity_n be_v forgive_v and_o who_o sin_n be_v cover_v blessed_n be_v the_o man_n to_o who_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o impute_v sin_n this_o be_v no_o proof_n for_o t._n v._o his_o sinful_a doctrine_n for_o they_o who_o the_o lord_n do_v bless_v and_o impute_v not_o iniquity_n to_o be_v in_o the_o way_n of_o god_n and_o partake_v of_o his_o righteousness_n through_o faith_n &_o can_v feed_v upon_o a_o imagine_a imputation_n or_o justification_n in_o sin_n for_o in_o psal._n 32.2_o david_n describe_v the_o blessedness_n of_o such_o in_o these_o word_n bless_a be_v the_o man_n to_o who_o the_o lord_n impute_v not_o iniquity_n and_o in_o who_o spirit_n there_o be_v no_o guile_n these_o word_n in_o who_o spirit_n there_o be_v no_o guile_n the_o priest_n use_v to_o leave_v out_o in_o their_o talk_n of_o imputation_n but_o as_o their_o faith_n without_o work_n or_o a_o real_a obedience_n on_o the_o creature_n part_n be_v but_o a_o dead_a empty_a and_o feign_a faith_n so_o their_o lay_v a_o claim_n to_o and_o pretend_v a_o justification_n by_o the_o impute_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n whilst_o they_o be_v sinner_n and_o pollute_v plead_v for_o imperfection_n whilst_o here_o it_o be_v but_o a_o false_a imagination_n of_o their_o own_o for_o though_o we_o confess_v that_o justification_n be_v in_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n in_o he_o and_o that_o this_o true_a and_o live_a faith_n and_o the_o righteousness_n of_o it_o be_v reckon_v to_o the_o true_a believer_n yet_o we_o do_v not_o therefore_o grant_v that_o sinner_n or_o pollute_v person_n in_o that_o state_n be_v clothe_v with_o this_o righteousness_n nor_o that_o it_o be_v impute_v to_o they_o as_o they_o whilst_o they_o be_v out_o of_o it_o for_o they_o that_o have_v put_v on_o christ_n be_v translate_v from_o sin_n and_o unrighteousness_n and_o so_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n which_o t.u._n say_v be_v without_o we_o and_o so_o put_v it_o a_o far_o off_o and_o yet_o cite_v phil._n 3.9_o which_o plain_o contradict_v his_o doctrine_n for_o paul_n have_v confess_v christ_n jesus_n to_o be_v his_o lord_n and_o suffer_v the_o loss_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o he_o may_v win_v christ_n it_o be_v that_o he_o may_v be_v find_v in_o he_o not_o have_v his_o own_o righteousness_n but_o that_o which_o be_v through_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n the_o righteousness_n which_o be_v of_o god_n by_o faith_n that_o say_v he_o i_o may_v know_v he_o and_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o the_o fellowship_n of_o his_o suffer_v be_v make_v conformable_a to_o his_o death_n vers_fw-la 9_o 10._o mark_v his_o win_a christ_n be_v find_v in_o he_o his_o not_o have_v his_o own_o righteousness_n but_o that_o of_o faith_n extend_v to_o a_o real_a enjoyment_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o be_v in_o he_o and_o not_o to_o a_o imagine_a imputation_n in_o sin_n but_o to_o his_o know_a christ_n and_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n fellowship_n of_o his_o suffer_v and_o conformity_n to_o his_o death_n this_o be_v a_o bless_a estate_n which_o all_o you_o that_o plead_v for_o sin_n and_o imperfection_n and_o a_o justification_n whilst_o you_o be_v out_o of_o christ_n or_o stranger_n to_o he_o be_v both_o unacquainted_a with_o his_o power_n and_o fellowship_n of_o suffer_v and_o never_o come_v you_o so_o to_o be_v conformable_a to_o his_o death_n you_o be_v yet_o alive_a in_o your_o sin_n and_o as_o to_o t._n v._o his_o argument_n or_o syllogism_n it_o prove_v nothing_o of_o his_o doctrine_n of_o impure_a or_o guilty_a person_n be_v justify_v by_o imputation_n for_o justification_n by_o faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n we_o never_o deny_v but_o this_o faith_n be_v not_o a_o dead_a faith_n nor_o without_o its_o own_o work_n for_o it_o purify_v the_o heart_n but_o so_o do_v not_o your_o faith_n who_o plead_v for_o sin_n by_o which_o you_o apply_v christ_n righteousness_n whilst_o you_o be_v out_o of_o it_o and_o it_o without_o you_o as_o t.u._n confess_v pag._n 17._o how_o have_v he_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o you_o that_o own_o this_o his_o doctrine_n soothe_v and_o daub_v people_n up_o in_o their_o sin_n flatter_v they_o with_o a_o pretence_n of_o imputation_n and_o justification_n therein_o when_o your_o faith_n be_v but_o dead_a and_o empty_a as_o a_o body_n without_o a_o spirit_n be_v dead_a that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o work_n by_o what_o faith_n and_o without_o what_o work_v be_v mention_v and_o manifest_a according_a to_o scripture_n both_o
not_o subsist_v in_o a_o several_a and_o distinct_a nature_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n so_o as_o they_o be_v not_o three_o god_n as_o be_v confess_v pag._n 3._o how_o be_v they_o three_o distinct_a or_o separate_a person_n subsist_v each_o by_o himself_o these_o thing_n be_v consider_v by_o the_o impartial_a reader_n the_o absurdity_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o doctrine_n and_o comparison_n touch_v the_o deity_n will_v easy_o appear_v and_o what_o be_v this_o aquinas_n quote_v as_o t._n d_n author_n so_o much_o cite_v and_o comment_v by_o he_o as_o a_o wise_a observant_a pag._n 19_o be_v not_o he_o a_o great_a writer_n for_o the_o romish_a religion_n and_o the_o pope_n doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o so_o a_o promoter_n of_o popery_n in_o his_o time_n and_o canonize_a 〈◊〉_d saint_n among_o they_o see_v his_o large_a volume_n his_o sum_n and_o other_o he_o be_v high_o applaud_v by_o the_o papist_n as_o be_v a_o industrious_a promoter_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o religion_n and_o be_v he_o not_o a_o dominican_n friar_n to_o who_o it_o appear_v that_o t._n d._n be_v very_o much_o behold_v for_o his_o doctrine_n of_o three_o distinct_a or_o sever_v person_n in_o the_o godhead_n more_o than_o he_o be_v to_o scripture_n for_o that_o be_v silent_a concern_v it_o but_o i_o have_v of_o late_o read_v it_o in_o aquinas_n his_o sum_n who_o be_v tho._n danson_n wise_a observant_a and_o further_a mark_n that_o after_o t._n d._n have_v confess_v that_o the_o word_n person_n can_v be_v proper_o attribute_v to_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o the_o name_n common_a to_o god_n and_o the_o creature_n do_v signify_v something_o wherein_o the_o creature_n bear_v some_o anology_n to_o god_n and_o three_o person_n not_o strict_o yet_o anological_o in_o the_o godhead_n pag._n 3_o 4._o where_o prove_v he_o this_o by_o scripture_n and_o wherein_o do_v man_n bear_v a_o proportion_n or_o likeness_n in_o his_o person_n with_o his_o maker_n this_o be_v strange_a doctrine_n import_v that_o the_o deity_n have_v the_o resemblance_n or_o likeness_n of_o person_n but_o not_o proper_o which_o if_o improper_o why_o do_v they_o stand_v so_o much_o upon_o their_o improper_a distinction_n in_o the_o godhead_n yet_o say_v t._n d._n may_v this_o word_n person_n be_v use_v by_o we_o to_o distinguish_v the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n in_o the_o godhead_n and_o one_o from_o another_o answer_v so_o it_o appear_v he_o plead_v for_o a_o liberty_n to_o put_v improper_a name_n upon_o god_n from_o his_o pretence_n of_o anology_n the_o scripture_n he_o mention_n hebr._n 1.3_o make_v against_o he_o it_o be_v the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o substance_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o as_o it_o be_v in_o some_o english_a copy_n express_v image_n of_o his_o person_n however_o it_o be_v not_o the_o express_a person_n of_o his_o person_n much_o less_o the_o express_v singular_a person_n or_o rational_a substance_n subsist_v by_o itself_o distinct_a from_o the_o father_n for_o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o say_v christ_n and_o the_o son_n do_v nothing_o of_o himself_o but_o what_o he_o see_v the_o father_n do_v and_o the_o father_n be_v in_o the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o if_o so_o be_v that_o the_o soul_n separate_v from_o the_o body_n can_v be_v call_v a_o person_n as_o t._n d._n say_v pag._n 2_o 3._o how_o can_v he_o presume_v to_o call_v the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o life_n or_o breath_n of_o god_n a_o person_n distinct_a from_o god_n whilst_o god_n be_v never_o distinct_a and_o separate_a from_o his_o own_o life_n but_o than_o it_o appear_v that_o t._n d._n be_v necessitate_v to_o call_v the_o glorious_a divine_a three_o in_o heaven_n something_o and_o therefore_o he_o say_v that_o distinction_n in_o the_o godhead_n can_v be_v apprehend_v by_o we_o by_o any_o other_o notion_n or_o resemblance_n than_o person_n and_o say_v he_o we_o know_v not_o what_o to_o call_v these_o three_o but_o person_n pag._n 4._o for_o the_o conception_n or_o notion_n that_o we_o have_v of_o the_o father_n suppose_v as_o a_o subsistent_n or_o person_n be_v in_o adaequatus_fw-la conceptus_fw-la in_o respect_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n etc._n etc._n pag._n 17._o reply_v but_o by_o what_o do_v he_o and_o his_o brethren_n apprehend_v this_o concern_v god_n sure_o neither_o by_o the_o scripture_n not_o by_o immediate_a revelation_n or_o inspiration_n nor_o yet_o by_o reason_n for_o that_o have_v fail_v they_o in_o this_o matter_n as_o also_o the_o nature_n and_o work_n of_o god_n be_v above_o their_o reach_n and_o the_o comprehension_n of_o the_o creature_n so_o that_o their_o conception_n and_o notion_n be_v unscriptural_a we_o have_v no_o ground_n to_o believe_v they_o whilst_o we_o have_v but_o their_o conception_n word_n and_o notion_n for_o what_o they_o say_v derive_v from_o popish_a and_o heathen_a author_n and_o not_o from_o any_o immediate_a power_n revelation_n or_o scripture_n and_o his_o say_n they_o do_v not_o know_v what_o to_o call_v these_o three_o but_o person_n show_v they_o be_v hard_o put_v to_o it_o as_o be_v necessitate_v to_o call_v they_o something_o but_o what_o be_v they_o ignorant_a of_o the_o scripture_n or_o will_v not_o the_o scripture_n satisfy_v they_o and_o yet_o profess_v it_o their_o rule_n they_o have_v better_o search_v the_o scripture_n instead_o of_o aquinas_n and_o aristotle_n and_o see_v what_o they_o be_v call_v there_o viz._n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v one_o beside_o these_o three_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n t._n d._n have_v elsewhere_o call_v they_o witness_n pag._n 5_o 7_o and_o 10._o and_o thus_o he_o contradict_v himself_o one_o while_o he_o know_v not_o what_o to_o call_v they_o but_o person_n and_o another_o while_n call_v they_o three_o witness_n witness_n from_o their_o bear_a record_n and_o thus_o in_o contradiction_n he_o know_v what_o to_o call_v they_o beside_o person_n but_o then_o he_o say_v all_o witness_n proper_o so_o call_v be_v person_n how_o prove_v he_o that_o be_v not_o all_o thing_n that_o bear_v record_v witness_n be_v heaven_n and_o earth_n person_n and_o be_v the_o water_n and_o the_o blood_n person_n see_v they_o bear_v record_n in_o the_o earth_n and_o be_v conscience_n in_o a_o man_n a_o person_n distinct_a from_o the_o man_n see_v conscience_n bear_v witness_v if_o it_o be_v how_o then_o be_v the_o soul_n distinct_a from_o the_o body_n no_o person_n page_z 3_o 5._o t._n d._n upon_o 1_o john_n 5.9_o the_o witness_n of_o god_n be_v great_a refer_v to_o the_o witness_n concern_v christ_n verse_n 7._o not_o to_o verse_n 8._o for_o none_o of_o those_o witness_n be_v god_n reply_v and_o yet_o those_o witness_n verse_n 8._o be_v the_o spirit_n the_o water_n and_o the_o blood_n herein_o t._n d._n have_v deny_v the_o spirit_n to_o be_v god_n contrary_a to_o their_o former_a pretence_n and_o so_o be_v come_v under_o that_o they_o have_v so_o unjust_o charge_v we_o withal_o but_o we_o own_o the_o divinity_n of_o that_o spirit_n that_o bear_v record_n in_o the_o earth_n and_o know_v the_o water_n and_o blood_n which_o agree_v in_o one_o with_o it_o to_o be_v therefore_o spiritual_a and_o of_o this_o water_n and_o spirit_n a_o man_n must_v be_v bear_v or_o else_o he_o can_v enter_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n joh._n 13.5_o and_o by_o this_o blood_n his_o conscience_n must_v be_v sprinkle_v from_o dead_a work_n who_o ever_o come_v to_o enter_v the_o heavenly_a sanctuary_n and_o we_o may_v further_o observe_v how_o dubious_a t._n d._n in_o his_o work_n have_v appear_v from_o what_o he_o say_v pag._n 83._o viz._n if_o my_o answer_n seem_v not_o so_o clear_a as_o the_o objection_n which_o i_o hope_v i_o need_v not_o fear_n unless_o in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o trinity_n that_o be_v a_o mystery_n so_o by_o that_o it_o rebate_n the_o sharp_a edge_n of_o humane_a understanding_n etc._n etc._n by_o which_o the_o reader_n may_v take_v notice_n that_o he_o be_v conscious_a to_o himself_o that_o his_o answer_n in_o this_o case_n may_v not_o seem_v so_o clear_a as_o the_o objection_n and_o that_o he_o have_v but_o make_v use_n of_o his_o humane_a understanding_n and_o not_o of_o scripture_n therein_o the_o edge_n of_o which_o be_v so_o rebate_v and_o grow_v so_o dull_a that_o it_o will_v take_v very_o little_a impression_n upon_o any_o that_o be_v in_o a_o right_a mind_n and_o understanding_n even_o none_o at_o all_o upon_o such_o who_o rely_v not_o nor_o lean_a to_o their_o own_o understanding_n but_o upon_o the_o guidance_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n which_o lead_v into_o all_o truth_n which_o it_o appear_v he_o have_v refuse_v and_o go_v from_o whilst_o he_o be_v now_o fain_o to_o make_v use_n of_o his_o humane_a understanding_n
the_o benefit_n whereof_o they_o only_o receive_v who_o believe_v in_o and_o obey_v he_o in_o his_o light_n within_o and_o to_o such_o only_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n as_o do_v obey_v he_o though_o the_o free_a proffer_n of_o god_n love_n in_o he_o towards_o all_o mankind_n god_n commend_v his_o love_n to_o we_o in_o that_o whilst_o we_o be_v sinner_n christ_n die_v so_o that_o we_o do_v faithful_o acknowledge_v the_o love_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n and_o will_v not_o at_o all_o have_v it_o diminish_v or_o suspect_v nor_o yet_o have_v christ_n office_n work_n or_o end_n of_o his_o come_n bring_v into_o question_n however_o we_o do_v oppose_v man_n confusion_n and_o misapprehension_n concern_v god_n christ_n righteousness_n faith_n etc._n etc._n which_o none_o right_o know_v or_o apprehend_v but_o they_o who_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o now_o touch_v justification_n by_o impute_v righteousness_n where_o it_o be_v know_v in_o reality_n justication_n we_o never_o deny_v or_o oppose_v see_v that_o where_o god_n impute_v or_o reckon_v righteousness_n as_o he_o do_v to_o abraham_n and_o still_o do_v to_o his_o seed_n of_o faith_n that_o have_v a_o real_a sense_n and_o enjoyment_n of_o it_o as_o every_o one_o have_v that_o be_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o true_a and_o live_a faith_n but_o we_o do_v still_o oppose_v and_o deny_v the_o vain_a conceit_n and_o imagination_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o independent_n and_o all_o of_o their_o affinity_n touch_v their_o false_a imputation_n and_o justification_n to_o sinful_a and_o wicked_a man_n whilst_o such_o which_o he_o that_o justify_v be_v abomination_n to_o the_o lord_n as_o he_o be_v that_o condemn_v the_o just._n pag._n 39_o but_o whilst_o t._n d._n grant_v that_o the_o word_n justify_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v and_o the_o hebrew_n hitzdik_n signify_v justum_fw-la facere_fw-la by_o this_o he_o have_v contradict_v himself_o and_o much_o of_o his_o brethren_n work_n for_o person_n be_v justify_v whilst_o the_o subject_n of_o sin_n and_o disobedience_n for_o if_o 〈◊〉_d justify_v be_v to_o make_v just_o then_o it_o be_v a_o real_a work_n effect_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n sanctification_n and_o justification_n be_v inseparable_a companion_n as_o t._n vincent_n have_v confess_v which_o be_v not_o their_o imagine_a justification_n nor_o pronounce_v man_n righteous_a whilst_o they_o be_v real_o unrighteous_a for_o whilst_o such_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v both_o condemn_v and_o accuse_v and_o not_o justify_v they_o in_o any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o its_o own_o nature_n neither_o be_v it_o true_o say_v that_o man_n be_v make_v just_o while_o they_o continue_v unjust_a and_o sinner_n second_o if_o the_o word_n impute_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d proper_o signify_v to_o cast_v account_n and_o the_o hebrew_n chashab_n signify_v to_o think_v imagine_v and_o reason_n etc._n etc._n as_o t._n d._n say_v then_o first_o if_o it_o have_v relation_n to_o god_n impute_v righteousness_n to_o the_o believer_n the_o account_n he_o cast_v therein_o must_v needs_o be_v true_a for_o he_o do_v not_o account_v wicked_a man_n righteous_a second_o if_o impute_v signify_v to_o think_v imagine_v and_o reason_n as_o to_o imagine_v it_o can_v have_v relation_n to_o god_n for_o his_o account_n be_v beyond_o imagination_n and_o his_o thought_n above_o man_n thought_n and_o than_o it_o be_v not_o safe_a nor_o true_a in_o man_n to_o depend_v upon_o his_o own_o think_n or_o imagine_v or_o imputation_n for_o where_o god_n account_v a_o man_n righteous_a his_o spirit_n do_v evidence_n it_o beyond_o thought_n or_o imagination_n for_o many_o imagine_v and_o think_v themselves_o righteous_a when_o they_o be_v unrighteous_a as_o there_o be_v a_o generation_n that_o be_v pure_a in_o their_o own_o eye_n yet_o be_v not_o cleanse_v from_o their_o filthiness_n and_o when_o christ_n righteousness_n be_v esteem_v any_o one_o it_o be_v not_o without_o the_o work_n of_o her_o own_o as_o it_o be_v false_o assert_v pag._n 39_o no_o more_o than_o abraham_n faith_n be_v without_o its_o own_o work_n or_o obedience_n pag._n 40._o t._n d._n argue_v first_o from_o the_o proportion_n which_o our_o justification_n by_o christ_n righteousness_n bear_v to_o our_o condemnation_n by_o adam_n be_v sin_n but_o our_o condemnation_n be_v by_o imputation_n of_o adam_n be_v sin_n therefore_o our_o justification_n be_v by_o the_o imputation_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n rom._n 5.19_o reply_v this_o condemnation_n that_o be_v come_v upon_o all_o man_n be_v because_o all_o have_v sin_v and_o partake_v of_o the_o fall_n be_v in_o adam_n in_o the_o earthly_a state_n real_o bear_v his_o image_n and_o this_o be_v not_o a_o think_n or_o imagine_v a_o condemnation_n from_o or_o for_o a_o imputation_n of_o adam_n sin_n according_a to_o their_o notion_n of_o it_o but_o real_o a_o partake_n of_o the_o disodience_n of_o one_o upon_o all_o every_o man_n shall_v die_v for_o his_o own_o iniquity_n the_o soul_n that_o sin_v it_o shall_v die_v etc._n etc._n and_o if_o our_o justification_n by_o christ_n righteousness_n bear_v a_o proportion_n to_o our_o condemnation_n then_o must_v we_o as_o real_o partake_v of_o christ_n righteousness_n be_v convert_v as_o we_o have_v of_o sin_n be_v unconvert_v and_o this_o be_v not_o a_o think_n or_o imagine_v ourselves_o righteous_a but_o a_o true_a enjoyment_n and_o bear_v his_o image_n and_o be_v conformable_a to_o it_o as_o real_o as_o we_o have_v bear_v and_o be_v conformable_a to_o the_o image_n of_o the_o earthly_a 1_o cor._n 15.47_o 48_o 49._o t._n d._n argue_v second_o from_o the_o proportion_n of_o our_o be_v make_v righteous_a bear_n to_o christ_n be_v make_v sin_n but_o christ_n be_v make_v sin_n by_o imputation_n therefore_o so_o be_v we_o make_v righteous_a 2_o cor._n 5._o ult_n for_o he_o be_v make_v sin_n for_o we_o who_o know_v no_o sin_n i._n e._n by_o a_o experimental_a knowledge_n of_o its_o operation_n in_o himself_o he_o do_v no_o sin_n 1_o pet._n 2.21_o that_o we_o may_v be_v make_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o he_o reply_v here_o t._n d._n have_v but_o bring_v over_o his_o old_a argument_n long_o since_o answer_v and_o confute_v by_o that_o servant_n of_o the_o lord_n s_o fisher_n as_o may_v be_v see_v at_o large_a in_o his_o book_n rusticus_n ad_fw-la acadaemicos_fw-la which_o t._n d._n j._n o._n and_o their_o brethren_n can_v never_o answer_v this_o i_o mention_v that_o people_n may_v perceive_v his_o matter_n to_o be_v neither_o new_a nor_o more_o profound_a than_o it_o be_v many_o year_n ago_o when_o it_o be_v confute_v by_o truth_n and_o if_o our_o be_v make_v the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n bear●●_n proportion_n to_o his_o be_v make_v to_o be_v sin_n for_o we_o when_o he_o know_v no_o sin_n by_o its_o operation_n in_o himself_o nor_o do_v sin_n than_o it_o follow_v by_o this_o proportion_n that_o we_o be_v make_v or_o rather_o think_v or_o imagine_v to_o be_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n whilst_o we_o neither_o know_v his_o righteousness_n nor_o experience_v his_o work_n in_o ourselves_o nor_o do_v righteousness_n which_o be_v altogether_o false_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o intent_n see_v that_o it_o be_v christ_n in_o who_o be_v no_o sin_n that_o we_o be_v make_v god_n righteousness_n have_v experience_v the_o new_a creature_n state_n in_o christ_n which_o in_o he_o be_v create_v unto_o good_a work_n which_o god_n have_v ordain_v we_o shall_v walk_v in_o they_o 2_o cor._n 5.17_o 18._o ephes._n 2.10_o and_o this_o be_v more_o than_o thought_n or_o imagination_n of_o be_v righteous_a or_o in_o christ_n for_o it_o be_v in_o truth_n and_o reality_n which_o admit_v not_o of_o your_o imagine_a application_n or_o claim_v a_o interest_n in_o that_o which_o you_o be_v out_o of_o and_o which_o be_v none_o of_o you_o in_o the_o true_a enjoyment_n and_o if_o the_o word_n impute_v have_v relation_n to_o justification_n and_o justify_v signify_v justum_fw-la facere_fw-la then_o w._n p_n definition_n thereof_o be_v true_a be_v that_o which_o express_v what_o be_v personal_o enjoy_v and_o not_o imagine_v and_o this_o be_v no_o cavil_v as_o tho._n danson_n false_o say_v page_n 41._o t._n d._n god_n admit_v of_o what_o christ_n do_v on_o our_o behalf_n as_o if_o it_o be_v our_o personal_a act_n pag._n 41._o reply_v this_o be_v his_o apprehension_n of_o the_o surety_n payment_n of_o the_o debt_n as_o appear_v before_o which_o be_v a_o very_a easy_a put_v off_o to_o evade_v personal_a or_o real_a and_o perfect_a obedience_n on_o the_o creature_n part_n but_o it_o will_v not_o be_v so_o accept_v of_o god_n as_o the_o end_n of_o christ_n obedience_n see_v that_o it_o be_v to_o
until_o the_o law_n sin_n be_v in_o the_o world_n but_o sin_n be_v not_o impute_v where_o there_o be_v no_o law_n verse_n 13._o but_o now_o mark_n there_o be_v a_o law_n transgress_v whereby_o sin_n and_o transgression_n be_v impute_v to_o they_o that_o be_v guilty_a of_o transgression_n as_o all_o in_o adam_n in_o the_o earthly_a state_n and_o nature_n be_v and_o therefore_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n righteousness_n be_v not_o impute_v to_o person_n out_o of_o christ_n or_o to_o such_o that_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o his_o righteousness_n pag._n 45._o arg._n 4._o quaker_n a_o man_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v actual_o sinful_a and_o imputative_o righteous_a he_o may_v as_o well_o be_v say_v to_o be_v actual_o damn_v and_o imputative_o save_v to_o which_o t._n d._n answer_v why_o not_o as_o well_o as_o to_o say_v a_o man_n be_v actual_o poor_a and_o not_o worth_a a_o groat_n but_o imputative_o rich_a as_o have_v by_o surety_n pay_v his_o debt_n of_o thousand_o reply_v here_o he_o have_v plain_o discover_v their_o notion_n of_o imputation_n and_o the_o falseness_n of_o it_o viz._n that_o a_o man_n be_v imputative_o righteous_a when_o actual_o sinful_a or_o actual_o damn_v and_o yet_o imputative_o save_v what_o gross_a corruption_n and_o ignorance_n be_v this_o and_o what_o a_o improper_a comparison_n do_v he_o bring_v to_o back_o it_o let_v the_o wise_a judge_n and_o we_o do_v not_o admit_v of_o it_o in_o this_o case_n as_o that_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v actual_o damn_v and_o imputative_o save_v or_o actual_o guilty_a and_o yet_o imputative_o innocent_a but_o that_o such_o to_o who_o righteousness_n and_o true_a riches_n be_v reckon_v as_o be_v they_o have_v right_o therein_o and_o be_v partaker_n thereof_o and_o what_o he_o assert_v herein_o by_o his_o simile_n be_v but_o a_o bege_v the_o question_n and_o take_v that_o for_o grant_v which_o be_v still_o oppose_v as_o both_o unscriptural_a and_o unreasonable_a viz._n man_n be_v actual_o damn_v and_o imputative_o save_v or_o actual_o guilty_a and_o imputative_o innocent_a by_o the_o same_o reason_n he_o may_v as_o well_o say_v person_n real_o thief_n be_v innocent_a or_o person_n real_o and_o actual_a treacherous_a and_o rebellious_a be_v true_a and_o good_a subject_n or_o actual_o devil_n and_o imputative_o saint_n but_o christ_n be_v or_o become_v our_o surety_n be_v not_o to_o impute_v righteousness_n to_o man_n in_o transgression_n but_o to_o bring_v they_o into_o covenant_n and_o peace_n with_o god_n which_o stand_v in_o everlasting_a righteousness_n and_o not_o in_o sin_n for_o he_o be_v also_o a_o perfect_a example_n to_o be_v follow_v as_o well_o as_o profess_v and_o he_o be_v the_o surety_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o covenant_n which_o be_v spiritual_a and_o be_v manifest_v and_o enjoy_v in_o his_o people_n and_o t._n d_n instance_n that_o nine_o man_n throughout_o a_o mutinous_a army_n be_v actual_o guilty_a and_o yet_o imputative_o innocent_a when_o the_o ten_o man_n be_v admit_v to_o sustain_v the_o punishment_n due_a to_o the_o rest_n be_v as_o sottish_a and_o impertinent_a as_o the_o rest_n before_o for_o neither_o be_v a_o mutinous_a army_n innocent_a nor_o be_v christ_n any_o of_o the_o mutinous_a or_o guilty_a person_n and_o where_o prove_v t.d._n that_o imputation_n be_v a_o act_n of_o law_n and_o make_v a_o relative_n and_o not_o a_o real_a change_n i_o ask_v what_o law_n it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o be_v it_o real_a or_o true_a or_o no_o if_o it_o be_v of_o god_n it_o must_v be_v true_a if_o not_o then_o false_a and_o it_o be_v a_o false_a imputation_n which_o be_v not_o real_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n who_o know_v that_o abraham_n faith_n be_v impute_v or_o reckon_v to_o he_o for_o righteousness_n and_o to_o that_o state_n to_o which_o there_o be_v no_o condemnation_n but_o justification_n which_o be_v a_o state_n of_o be_v &_o walk_v in_o christ_n and_o not_o a_o walk_n after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n and_o this_o they_o that_o experience_n and_o witness_n know_v a_o real_a change_n from_o death_n to_o life_n from_o condemnation_n to_o justification_n from_o sin_n to_o righteousness_n from_o the_o way_n of_o death_n and_o darkness_n to_o the_o way_n of_o life_n light_n and_o peace_n pag._n 45._o t._n d._n say_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o inherent_a righteousness_n for_o justification_n bu●_n yet_o there_o be_v need_n of_o it_o for_o other_o end_n as_o to_o make_v we_o meet_v for_o heaven_n col._n 1.12_o answ._n it_o appear_v that_o he_o mean_v by_o this_o inherent_a righteousness_n that_o of_o sanctification_n or_o the_o work_n of_o god_n spirit_n within_o which_o he_o afterward_o call_v personal_a righteousness_n and_o be_v there_o no_o need_n of_o this_o for_o justification_n what_o darkness_n be_v here_o as_o if_o man_n be_v justify_v while_n in_o the_o unsanctified_a state_n this_o be_v like_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o sottish_a stuff_n quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n which_o be_v but_o you_o be_v sanctify_v but_o you_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o god_n 1_o cor._n 6.11_o and_o also_o what_o contradiction_n have_v t._n d._n bring_v to_o himself_o herein_o whilst_o he_o have_v confess_v that_o the_o word_n justify_v signify_v to_o make_v just_o as_o also_o he_o have_v confess_v that_o inherent_a righteousness_n as_o he_o call_v it_o give_v a_o fitness_n of_o enjoy_v the_o heavenly_a inheritance_n it_o lie_v in_o communion_n with_o god_n pag._n 46._o than_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o give_v a_o fitness_n for_o justification_n whilst_o justification_n and_o sanctification_n be_v unseparable_a companion_n and_o god_n love_v his_o image_n in_o his_o people_n free_o say_v his_o brother_n t._n v._o thus_o without_o wash_v cleanse_v and_o sanctification_n man_n be_v not_o justify_v see_v the_o unrighteous_a shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o live_v in_o unrighteousness_n can_v be_v accept_v of_o he_o it_o be_v not_o the_o hearer_n of_o the_o law_n but_o the_o doer_n that_o shall_v be_v justify_v pag._n 46._o and_o now_o concern_v good_a work_n that_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n which_o t._n d._n accuse_v we_o with_o place_v merit_n for_o justification_n or_o as_o a_o deserve_a cause_n thereof_o etc._n etc._n concern_v this_o particular_a that_o faithful_a servant_n of_o the_o lord_n s_o fisher_n have_v very_o full_o answer_v t._n d._n and_o his_o brethren_n and_o it_o have_v be_v manifest_a how_o he_o do_v wrong_a and_o abuse_v s._n fisher_n about_o this_o point_n and_o how_o contrary_a to_o his_o intent_n he_o construe_v good_a work_n as_o be_v we_o relate_v to_o self_n work_v or_o imperfect_a obedience_n which_o s._n fisher_n never_o intend_v but_o with_o relation_n to_o those_o work_n which_o be_v perfect_a which_o christ_n be_v the_o author_n of_o which_o if_o christ_n work_n be_v not_o deserve_v who_o be_v and_o to_o those_o which_o god_n have_v wrought_v in_o we_o who_o have_v ordain_v peace_n for_o we_o have_v wrought_v all_o our_o work_n in_o we_o isa._n 26._o now_o we_o never_o place_v a_o merit_n upon_o self-acting_a nor_o upon_o man_n best_a work_n in_o the_o fall_v sinful_a and_o corrupt_a state_n so_o that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o correspondency_n betwixt_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n in_o this_o particular_a as_o false_o we_o have_v be_v accuse_v see_v s._n fisher_n rusticus_n ad_fw-la accademicos_fw-la where_o the_o point_n be_v full_o explain_v which_o you_o presbyterian_o and_o independent_n be_v never_o able_a to_o answer_v where_o do_v we_o ever_o profess_v or_o hold_v forth_o that_o we_o be_v able_a or_o can_v fulfil_v the_o law_n ourselves_o or_o merit_n or_o deserve_v salvation_n by_o any_o thing_n that_o we_o can_v do_v but_o we_o do_v profess_v and_o witness_v that_o through_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v enable_v to_o faithful_a and_o sincere_a obedience_n not_o of_o ourselves_o know_v that_o good_a work_n how_o ever_o reject_v and_o undervalue_v be_v ordain_v of_o god_n and_o without_o they_o your_o faith_n be_v dead_a as_o a_o body_n without_o a_o spirit_n be_v and_o it_o be_v true_a enough_o as_o t._n d._n say_v that_o you_o be_v averse_a to_o obedience_n through_o corruption_n who_o plead_v for_o sin_n term_n of_o life_n and_o yet_o will_v cover_v over_o all_o your_o filthy_a rag_n with_o a_o pretence_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n satisfaction_n imputation_n justification_n and_o merit_n whilst_o you_o be_v yet_o in_o your_o sin_n and_o corruption_n and_o in_o the_o weakness_n of_o your_o flesh_n but_o as_o under_o the_o law_n of_o work_n wherein_o you_o be_v in_o no_o perfect_a obedience_n pag._n 47._o see_v the_o law_n of_o faith_n be_v acknowledge_v i_o ask_v how_o far_o it_o
spirit_n christ_n perfect_o obey_v offer_v up_o himself_o a_o lamb_n without_o spot_n to_o god_n and_o we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o christ_n that_o make_v we_o free_a from_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n roman_n 8._o which_o freedom_n be_v effect_v with_o in_o pag._n 53._o if_o there_o be_v a_o connexion_n between_o justification_n and_o sanctification_n and_o that_o the_o same_o christ_n jesus_n that_o justify_v by_o his_o blood_n sanctify_v by_o his_o spirit_n as_o be_v confess_v from_o calvin_n etc._n etc._n in_o loc._n 2._o than_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v whilst_o in_o a_o unsanctified_a state_n seeing_z that_o it_o be_v also_o evidence_v by_o a_o holy_a life_n but_o then_o herein_o t._n d._n seem_v doubtful_a as_o rather_o incline_v to_o lay_v it_o upon_o the_o active_a obedience_n of_o christ_n but_o then_o be_v not_o he_o that_o be_v sanctify_v and_o justify_v be_v in_o a_o holy_a life_n a_o partaker_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n obedience_n and_o subjection_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n and_o the_o pure_a law_n of_o it_o see_v that_o make_v free_a from_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n but_o then_o he_o waver_v again_o to_o the_o understanding_n of_o some_o who_o suppose_v the_o end_n of_o christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n be_v that_o god_n righteous_a law_n may_v not_o be_v absolute_o contemn_v but_o may_v be_v observe_v though_o imperfect_o by_o believer_n other_o say_v he_o of_o the_o imputation_n of_o christ_n surety_n righteousness_n etc._n etc._n this_o imperfect_a observation_n of_o god_n righteous_a law_n be_v that_o he_o will_v fain_o centre_n in_o and_o which_o indeed_o the_o tenor_n of_o most_o of_o his_o discourse_n amount_v to_o though_o it_o be_v not_o the_o end_n of_o christ_n send_v into_o the_o world_n nor_o yet_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o law_n of_o life_n within_o for_o the_o end_n thereof_o be_v to_o destroy_v sin_n and_o to_o work_v man_n perfect_a freedom_n from_o it_o which_o they_o that_o experience_n be_v only_o the_o true_a and_o real_a subject_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n and_o know_v the_o true_a imputation_n thereof_o and_o effect_n and_o real_a benefit_n of_o his_o be_v a_o surety_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n wherein_o the_o promise_v of_o god_n be_v fulfil_v to_o and_o in_o man_n and_o man_n bring_v under_o the_o obligation_n of_o that_o law_n and_o covenant_n which_o tend_v to_o the_o exaltation_n of_o truth_n and_o righteousness_n in_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o bring_v the_o creature_n into_o a_o perfect_a and_o peaceable_a subjection_n unto_o its_o maker_n so_o christ_n be_v both_o our_o surety_n advocate_n intercessor_n and_o mediator_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n be_v to_o make_v both_o unity_n reconciliation_n and_o peace_n betwixt_o they_o a_o mediator_n be_v not_o a_o mediator_n of_o one_o but_o betwixt_o two_o etc._n etc._n to_o bring_v into_o mutual_a agreement_n t._n d._n our_o good_a and_o our_o evil_a work_n be_v not_o perfect_o contrary_a for_o our_o evil_a work_n be_v perfect_o evil_a for_o malum_fw-la fit_a ex_fw-la quilibet_fw-la defectu_fw-la any_o one_o defect_n make_v our_o work_n evil_a but_o our_o good_a work_n be_v but_o imperfest_o good_a answ._n if_o good_a work_n and_o evil_a work_n be_v not_o perfect_o contrary_a where_o and_o what_o then_o be_v the_o good_a work_n whilst_o defect_n and_o imperfection_n be_v plead_v for_o which_o make_v they_o evil_a sure_o good_a and_o evil_n be_v perfect_o contrary_a but_o by_o this_o man_n consequence_n there_o be_v no_o good_a work_n whilst_o defect_n and_o imperfection_n remain_v in_o they_o and_o then_o why_o do_v he_o call_v they_o good_a work_n it_o appear_v he_o give_v they_o that_o name_n which_o be_v improper_a to_o they_o but_o if_o good_a work_n be_v real_o acknowledge_v as_o we_o know_v they_o be_v in_o scripture_n and_o that_o they_o that_o be_v true_o so_o be_v wrought_v in_o the_o light_n and_o so_o in_o god_n these_o be_v perfect_o contrary_a to_o evil_n but_o such_o t._n d._n &_o his_o brethren_n with_o their_o sin_n and_o imperfection_n be_v stranger_n to_o whilst_o they_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o light_n wherein_o the_o good_a work_n be_v wrought_v and_o as_o to_o the_o condignity_n he_o speak_v of_o or_o worth_a as_o with_o relation_n to_o the_o infinite_a reward_n we_o do_v as_o before_z place_v it_o in_o that_o heavenly_a image_n spirit_n and_o life_n which_o bring_v forth_o the_o good_a work_n which_o be_v ordain_v of_o god_n and_o it_o be_v that_o spirit_n which_o lead_v its_o follower_n to_o the_o infinite_a reward_n of_o life_n and_o salvation_n arg._n 4._o rom._n 2.13_o not_o the_o hearer_n of_o the_o law_n be_v justify_v before_o god_n but_o the_o doer_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v justify_v to_o this_o t._n d._n say_v the_o word_n give_v a_o reason_n of_o the_o jew_n perish_v who_o have_v the_o law_n viz._n the_o old_a covenant_n reply_v the_o reason_n of_o their_o perish_v be_v their_o disobedience_n unto_o the_o law_n but_o this_o of_o the_o doer_n of_o the_o law_n wherein_o both_o the_o just_a and_o justify_v state_n be_v intimate_v according_a to_o the_o gospel_n verse_n 14_o 15_o 16._o relate_v to_o those_o gentile_n which_o have_v not_o the_o law_n outward_o and_o yet_o do_v by_o nature_n the_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o law_n which_o the_o apostle_n render_v as_o a_o reason_n and_o proof_n of_o their_o justification_n who_o show_v the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n which_o law_n be_v pure_a and_o spiritual_a convert_v the_o soul_n and_o here_o it_o be_v also_o evident_a that_o the_o matter_n or_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o law_n they_o have_v both_o in_o power_n and_o operation_n who_o have_v it_o not_o in_o the_o letter_n of_o it_o but_o the_o extent_n of_o this_o be_v and_o have_v be_v much_o oppose_v by_o t._n d._n and_o such_o as_o he_o who_o have_v gross_o pervert_v the_o scripture_n for_o their_o own_o sinful_a and_o corrupt_a end_n to_o their_o own_o and_o other_o destruction_n and_o now_o that_o a_o state_n of_o freedom_n from_o sin_n be_v attainable_a in_o this_o life_n perfection_n this_o t._n d._n erroneous_o set_v down_o as_o a_o error_n and_o argue_v against_o it_o as_o follow_v arg._n 1._o if_o no_o mere_a man_n ever_o attain_v to_o any_o such_o state_n than_o it_o be_v not_o attainable_a but_o no_o mere_a man_n ever_o do_v etc._n etc._n answ._n his_o term_n mere_a man_n be_v his_o own_o and_o not_o we_o what_o he_o mean_v by_o mere_a man_n be_v a_o question_n for_o it_o may_v be_v take_v various_o as_o first_o he_o may_v be_v deem_v a_o mere_a man_n that_o be_v without_o god_n christ_n or_o the_o guidance_n of_o his_o spirit_n who_o live_v to_o himself_o in_o which_o state_n we_o never_o say_v that_o freedom_n from_o sin_n be_v attainable_a by_o any_o mere_a man_n for_o without_o christ_n we_o can_v do_v nothing_o second_o if_o mere_a man_n be_v take_v single_o as_o purus_fw-la homo_fw-la or_o man_n pure_o or_o entire_o without_o mixture_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v either_o contrary_a to_o he_o as_o man_n or_o not_o proper_a to_o his_o be_v man_n as_o sin_n and_o transgression_n be_v improper_a to_o he_o for_o so_o he_o be_v in_o his_o first_o creation_n in_o innocency_n and_o primitive_a purity_n as_o so_o consider_v to_o deny_v he_o perfection_n or_o freedom_n from_o sin_n be_v to_o deny_v he_o that_o which_o god_n do_v invest_v he_o with_o whilst_o he_o be_v in_o his_o maker_n image_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o he_o and_o to_o which_o christ_n come_v to_o restore_v man_n again_o out_o of_o the_o fall_n but_o then_o t._n d._n explain_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o mere_a man_n viz._n such_o as_o the_o eminent_o holy_a person_n in_o the_o scripture_n who_o he_o deny_v to_o have_v ever_o attain_v a_o state_n of_o perfection_n by_o which_o he_o have_v accuse_v all_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n at_o once_o as_o but_o mere_a man_n in_o the_o worst_a sense_n and_o such_o be_v they_o that_o be_v carnal_a and_o walk_v as_o man_n 1_o cor_fw-la 3.3_o and_o he_o have_v therein_o both_o oppose_v god_n command_n promise_n and_o work_n as_o also_o the_o end_n of_o christ_n manifestation_n which_o be_v perfect_o to_o restore_v man_n out_o of_o sin_n and_o unrighteousness_n unto_o god_n see_v gen._n 3.15_o rom._n 16.20_o deut._n 6.5_o and_o 10.12_o and_o 11.1_o and_o 13.18_o and_o 19.9_o matth._n 22.37_o mark_v 12.30_o gen._n 17.1_o deut._n 18.13_o 2_o sam._n 22.33_o psal._n 18.32_o and_o 37.37_o and_o 119.1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o isa._n 1.16_o john_n 13.8_o isa._n 4.4_o and_o 60.21_o ezek._n 36.25_o 26_o 27_o 33._o jer._n 33.8_o hebr._n 8._o and_o chap._n 10.13_o 14_o 15_o 16_o 17._o zeph._n
salvation_n i_o do_v not_o remember_v these_o to_o be_v our_o word_n as_o t._n d._n lay_v they_o down_o who_o also_o begin_v with_o a_o mere_a falsehood_n against_o we_o say_v that_o the_o word_n christ_n be_v a_o mere_a blind_a to_o delude_v the_o ignorant_a for_o the_o quaker_n deny_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n they_o can_v own_v he_o for_o the_o author_n of_o illumination_n answ._n this_o be_v a_o apparent_a slander_n cast_v upon_o we_o as_o our_o book_n and_o write_n do_v show_v that_o we_o never_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n or_o his_o divinity_n still_o affirm_v that_o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n and_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n and_o the_o word_n be_v god_n and_o that_o in_o he_o be_v life_n and_o the_o life_n be_v the_o light_n of_o man_n and_o that_o be_v the_o true_a light_n which_o light_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n as_o in_o john_n 1.1.4_o 9_o now_o to_o detect_v we_o as_o be_v in_o a_o error_n herein_o t._n d._n urge_v ephes._n 2.12_o that_o at_o that_o time_n you_o be_v without_o christ_n have_v no_o hope_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v no_o proof_n that_o they_o have_v none_o of_o christ_n light_n in_o they_o though_o they_o then_o do_v not_o experience_n he_o their_o hope_n nor_o be_v come_v to_o the_o covenant_n be_v without_o god_n in_o the_o world_n in_o which_o state_n they_o be_v stranger_n and_o enemy_n in_o their_o mind_n the_o mystery_n be_v hide_v from_o they_o the_o light_n be_v obscure_v from_o their_o understanding_n it_o shine_v in_o darkness_n and_o the_o darkness_n comprehend_v it_o not_o but_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o the_o light_n be_v not_o in_o they_o because_o they_o be_v without_o god_n in_o the_o world_n no_o more_o than_o it_o follow_v that_o god_n be_v not_o in_o the_o world_n because_o the_o world_n know_v he_o not_o whereas_o its_o plain_a that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o the_o world_n be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o the_o world_n know_v he_o not_o john_n 1.10_o and_o see_v christ_n as_o god_n be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o illumination_n his_o illumination_n be_v divine_a and_o spiritual_a and_o therefore_o save_v to_o they_o that_o believe_v in_o it_o and_o god_n presence_n fill_v heaven_n and_o earth_n neither_o can_v darkness_n itself_o nor_o the_o deep_a nor_o hell_n hide_v or_o cover_v man_n from_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n nor_o yet_o obscure_v he_o from_o the_o reach_n of_o his_o spirit_n whether_o shall_v i_o go_v from_o thy_o spirit_n or_o whether_o shall_v i_o fly_v from_o thy_o presence_n if_o i_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n thou_o be_v there_o if_o i_o make_v my_o bed_n in_o hell_n behold_v thou_o be_v there_o if_o i_o take_v the_o wing_n of_o the_o morning_n etc._n etc._n psal._n 139._o yet_o still_o i_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v a_o state_n in_o which_o all_o be_v ignorant_a of_o god_n and_o in_o which_o the_o mystery_n to_o wit_n christ_n within_o the_o hope_n of_o glory_n have_v be_v hide_v from_o age_n and_o generation_n but_o be_v show_v reveal_v and_o make_v manifest_a to_o the_o true_a believer_n in_o his_o light_n who_o say_v believe_v in_o the_o light_n that_o you_o may_v be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o light_n and_o christ_n say_v i_o be_o come_v a_o light_n into_o the_o world_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o i_o may_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v eternal_a life_n and_o this_o we_o testify_v to_o against_o all_o opposer_n of_o his_o light_n as_o it_o be_v in_o every_o man_n pag._n 59_o and_o where_o t._n d._n argue_v that_o the_o gentile_n for_o a_o time_n have_v no_o promise_n of_o christ_n therefore_o know_v of_o none_o and_o consequent_o have_v not_o a_o light_n or_o knowledge_n sufficient_a to_o bring_v they_o to_o salvation_n reply_v what_o time_n be_v that_o the_o gentile_n have_v no_o promise_n of_o christ_n and_o how_o long_o be_v it_o be_v not_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n after_o the_o fall_n that_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n shall_v bruise_v the_o serpent_n head_n of_o a_o general_a extent_n as_o well_o towards_o gentile_n as_o jew_n for_o be_v not_o adam_n and_o eve_n the_o first_o parent_n of_o both_o to_o who_o this_o promise_n be_v make_v second_o the_o promise_n that_o be_v make_v to_o abraham_n whilst_o in_o the_o uncircumcision_n do_v not_o this_o relate_v to_o the_o gentile_n as_o well_o as_o the_o jew_n see_v rom._n 4._o and_o galat._n throughout_o and_o three_o be_v not_o christ_n death_n for_o all_o still_o a_o confirmation_n or_o evident_a testimony_n to_o the_o foregoing_a promise_n and_o covenant_n of_o god_n towards_o both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n but_o and_o if_o there_o be_v some_o time_n or_o age_n in_o which_o the_o gentile_n have_v no_o promise_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o not_o a_o light_n sufficient_a to_o salvation_n according_a to_o t._n d._n then_o it_o follow_v that_o none_o of_o they_o in_o that_o time_n or_o those_o age_n can_v be_v save_v and_o why_o but_o because_o god_n do_v not_o afford_v they_o a_o sufficient_a light_n which_o assertion_n and_o consequence_n lay_v the_o blame_n upon_o god_n but_o the_o falsehood_n thereof_o who_o be_v it_o that_o know_v the_o scripture_n that_o can_v see_v again_o where_o he_o put_v light_a for_o knowledge_n herein_o he_o do_v not_o reach_v our_o principle_n for_o many_o have_v a_o true_a light_n in_o they_o that_o be_v not_o come_v to_o the_o true_a knowledge_n for_o it_o be_v the_o light_n that_o shine_v in_o the_o heart_n that_o give_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n 2_o cor._n 4._o so_o the_o light_n be_v there_o before_o the_o knowledge_n be_v give_v and_o in_o that_o its_o able_a to_o give_v that_o knowledge_n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o save_v and_o where_o he_o bring_v 1_o tim._n 3._o ver_fw-la last_o for_o proof_n that_o the_o gentile_n neither_o have_v nor_o know_v any_o promise_n of_o christ_n for_o a_o time_n where_o he_o say_v god_n manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o as_o such_o preach_v unto_o the_o gentile_n be_v make_v two_o part_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n which_o in_o other_o age_n be_v not_o make_v know_v unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n as_o it_o be_v now_o reveal_v to_o his_o holy_a apostle_n and_o prophet_n by_o the_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n where_o note_n first_o that_o this_o manistation_n of_o god_n in_o the_o flesh_n and_o preach_v unto_o the_o gentile_n be_v no_o proof_n that_o either_o they_o have_v no_o promise_n of_o christ_n before_o or_o that_o they_o have_v no_o light_n in_o they_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n for_o if_o so_o than_o all_o gentile_n in_o all_o age_n before_o that_o time_n be_v condemn_v for_o want_v of_o save_a light_n be_v give_v to_o they_o which_o be_v a_o gross_a error_n to_o assert_v two_o as_o to_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n i_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v more_o large_a and_o open_a in_o the_o apostle_n day_n then_o for_o age_n before_o as_o also_o that_o be_v make_v manifest_a then_o which_o be_v hide_v for_o age_n and_o generation_n yet_o still_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o the_o gentile_n before_o have_v not_o a_o light_n sufficient_a to_o save_v or_o to_o manifest_v the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n in_o some_o degree_n three_o but_o yet_o t._n d._n his_o argue_v against_o the_o gentile_n have_v a_o sufficient_a light_n before_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n however_o if_o we_o can_v grant_v he_o his_o plea_n which_o we_o can_v it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o now_o the_o gentile_n or_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v not_o a_o light_n sufficient_a give_v they_o since_o christ_n be_v so_o come_v manifest_o testify_v as_o god_n salvation_n prepare_v before_o the_o face_n of_o all_o people_n be_v a_o light_n to_o the_o gentile_n and_o his_o testimony_n so_o signal_o confirm_v as_o it_o have_v be_v also_o both_o by_o his_o work_n and_o suffering_n but_o yet_o the_o better_a to_o inform_v our_o opposer_n of_o the_o light_n let_v they_o read_v john_n 1._o where_o speak_v of_o the_o word_n that_o be_v god_n that_o make_v all_o thing_n it_o be_v say_v in_o he_o be_v life_n and_o the_o life_n be_v the_o light_n of_o man_n verse_n 4._o and_o this_o light_n and_o life_n of_o man_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o word_n though_o it_o be_v before_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n yet_o it_o be_v still_o the_o light_n and_o life_n of_o christ_n bear_v witness_n of_o and_o more_o full_o manifest_v through_o his_o come_n or_o be_v send_v in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n pag._n 60._o t._n d._n the_o father_n be_v say_v to_o hide_v the_o object_n because_o he_o do_v not_o enlighten_v the_o subject_n i._n e._n to_o hide_v the_o gospel_n because_o he_o do_v
not_o enlighten_v their_o mind_n with_o the_o save_a knowledge_n of_o it_o answ._n this_o his_o because_n be_v ground_v upon_o his_o former_a error_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o hide_v the_o mystery_n of_o god_n salvation_n and_o kingdom_n be_v man_n oppose_a and_o resist_v his_o light_n and_o spirit_n in_o they_o so_o the_o cause_n be_v not_o original_o in_o god_n though_o he_o give_v man_n up_o to_o their_o darkness_n and_o unbelief_n when_o they_o have_v reject_v his_o light_n but_o it_o be_v the_o god_n of_o the_o world_n that_o have_v blind_v their_o mind_n from_o ●●eing_v the_o light_n of_o the_o glorious_a gospel_n of_o christ_n 2_o cor._n 4._o and_o the_o natural_a man_n be_v not_o receive_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n 1_o cor._n 2.14_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o he_o have_v no_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n give_v to_o he_o or_o in_o he_o though_o he_o as_o such_o can_v know_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n his_o knowledge_n and_o discern_a be_v but_o natural_a yet_o that_o a_o man_n in_o that_o state_n may_v be_v change_v in_o his_o mind_n and_o understanding_n by_o that_o which_o be_v spiritual_a be_v evident_a for_o if_o he_o be_v not_o convertable_a what_o will_v preach_v to_o he_o signify_v and_o what_o be_v it_o in_o he_o that_o can_v answer_v to_o and_o receive_v the_o spiritual_a testimony_n of_o truth_n and_o salvation_n pag._n 61._o to_o jo●_n 1.9_o that_o be_v the_o true_a light_n which_o light_v every_o man_n etc._n etc._n t._n d._n answer_n christ_n be_v speak_v of_o before_o as_o the_o messiah_n we_o must_v therefore_o understand_v the_o place_n i_o think_v not_o of_o natural_a light_n but_o supernatural_a not_o of_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n but_o of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n etc._n etc._n reply_v this_o be_v enough_o he_o have_v confess_v sufficient_a to_o break_v the_o neck_n of_o his_o own_o cause_n and_o his_o brethren_n who_o have_v affirm_v the_o light_n in_o every_o man_n to_o be_v insufficient_a as_o but_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n of_o reason_n of_o natural_a conscience_n etc._n etc._n but_o now_o he_o think_v it_o be_v not_o natural_a but_o supernatural_a the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n etc._n etc._n which_o must_v needs_o be_v save_v it_o be_v well_o that_o at_o length_n after_o his_o dark_a opposition_n against_o the_o light_n both_o at_o the_o dispute_v we_o have_v with_o he_o about_o ten_o year_n ago_o at_o sandwich_n as_o also_o in_o his_o silly_a confuse_a pamphlet_n style_v the_o quaker_n folly_n but_o it_o be_v well_o if_o he_o will_v retain_v those_o better_a thought_n of_o the_o light_n in_o every_o man_n its_o be_v supernatural_a the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n etc._n etc._n and_o then_o he_o will_v not_o oppose_v the_o quaker_n 〈◊〉_d he_o have_v do_v but_o that_o whilst_o he_o follow_v his_o thought_n and_o do_v not_o come_v to_o be_v direct_v by_o this_o light_n in_o he_o he_o prove_v waver_v and_o uncertain_a in_o his_o thought_n for_o in_o his_o follow_a distinction_n between_o be_v light_v and_o enlighten_v he_o render_v enlighten_v as_o to_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o understanding_n from_o eph._n 1.18_o but_o light_v as_o when_o candle_n be_v carry_v before_o we_o as_o a_o blind_a man_n p._n 62._o which_o comparison_n be_v impertinent_o and_o very_o improper_o bring_v in_o this_o matter_n for_o he_o be_v not_o speak_v before_o of_o a_o outward_a light_n as_o that_o of_o a_o candle_n before_o a_o blind_a man_n for_o it_o be_v absurd_a among_o man_n to_o offer_v a_o blind_a man_n a_o candle_n to_o light_v he_o or_o show_v he_o his_o way_n into_o a_o room_n when_o he_o be_v out_o of_o all_o capacity_n of_o see_v or_o receive_v any_o benefit_n by_o it_o but_o thus_o t._n d._n render_v christ_n lightning_n man_n when_o before_o he_o grant_v it_o to_o be_v supernatural_a the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n wherewith_o the_o mesias_n enlighten_v man_n which_o as_o it_o be_v not_o outward_a and_o natural_a so_o it_o be_v only_o see_v and_o know_v inward_o and_o spiritual_o but_o then_o t._n d._n to_o come_v off_o say_v the_o meaning_n can_v be_v no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o whosoever_o be_v enlighten_v be_v enlighten_v by_o he_o what_o a_o silly_a shuffle_n and_o evasion_n be_v this_o from_o his_o former_a grant_n that_o it_o be_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n that_o he_o enlighten_v when_o now_o but_o in_o the_o very_a next_o page_n it_o be_v whosoever_o be_v enlighten_v be_v enlighten_v and_o a_o little_a before_o that_o many_o that_o be_v light_v be_v not_o enlighten_v but_o be_v like_o a_o blind_a man_n so_o light_v that_o see_v never_o the_o better_a when_o a_o candle_n be_v carry_v before_o he_o so_o by_o this_o he_o make_v god_n offering_n man_n light_a neither_o to_o be_v of_o any_o effect_n to_o they_o nor_o yet_o like_a to_o be_v if_o they_o can_v have_v no_o more_o benefit_n by_o it_o then_o a_o blind_a man_n have_v by_o the_o light_n of_o a_o candle_n what_o then_o can_v be_v god_n end_n in_o lightning_n they_o what_o do_v it_o signify_v to_o they_o if_o they_o be_v so_o whole_o uncapable_a of_o see_v ever_o the_o better_a do_v he_o then_o bid_v they_o look_v bid_v they_o walk_v aright_o in_o the_o strait_a path_n and_o do_v he_o condemn_v they_o for_o not_o walk_v therein_o when_o they_o be_v altogether_o uncapable_a of_o it_o as_o from_o sight_n or_o light_n sufficient_a as_o his_o comparison_n before_o imply_v alas_o alas_o what_o a_o cruel_a unjust_a and_o unequal_a master_n will_v this_o render_v god_n and_o how_o unlike_a to_o himself_o do_v it_o represent_v he_o who_o way_n be_v equal_a love_v universal_a and_o grace_n free_a who_o first_o give_v light_n within_o and_o open_v the_o eye_n within_o before_o man_n can_v walk_v aright_o however_o his_o light_n within_o be_v gainsay_v by_o such_o blind_a guide_n as_o t._n d._n who_o be_v but_o in_o their_o thought_n vain_a imagination_n and_o notion_n know_v what_o they_o know_v natural_o and_o preach_v for_o doctrine_n man_n tradition_n pag._n 62._o rom._n 2.15_o t._n d._n say_v touch_v those_o gentile_n that_o show_v the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n that_o it_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o a_o save_v knowledge_n and_o it_o be_v not_o the_o law_n in_o their_o heart_n etc._n etc._n but_o yet_o a_o little_a after_o confess_v that_o the_o law_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o their_o heart_n in_o their_o understanding_n etc._n etc._n reply_v how_o then_o be_v they_o excuse_v according_a to_o the_o gospel_n and_o how_o then_o do_v the_o apostle_n bring_v they_o as_o a_o proof_n of_o justification_n verse_n 13_o 14._o can_v they_o be_v justify_v without_o a_o save_v knowledge_n but_o of_o t._n d_n ignorance_n in_o this_o much_o have_v be_v manifest_v both_o by_o s._n fisher_n and_o some_o other_o and_o how_o say_v he_o in_o page_n 63._o that_o the_o gentile_n in_o this_o sense_n have_v not_o the_o law_n in_o their_o heart_n viz._n a_o suitable_a disposition_n to_o the_o law_n as_o his_o word_n be_v what_o nature_n be_v it_o by_o which_o they_o do_v those_o thing_n contain_v in_o it_o how_o be_v it_o unsuitable_a to_o the_o law_n or_o how_o can_v that_o do_v those_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o law_n without_o a_o suitable_a disposition_n to_o it_o sure_o a_o mean_a understanding_n may_v perceive_v t._n d_n ignorance_n and_o error_n in_o this_o particular_a as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o rest_n for_o the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o their_o heart_n be_v spiritual_a and_o so_o be_v its_o effect_n in_o they_o and_o that_o nature_n by_o which_o they_o obey_v it_o be_v not_o opposite_a to_o it_o but_o in_o unity_n with_o it_o which_o nature_n be_v contrary_a to_o that_o in_o the_o jew_n which_o lead_v they_o to_o break_v and_o violate_v the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o as_o for_o those_o gentile_n that_o like_v not_o to_o retain_v god_n in_o their_o knowledge_n rom._n 1.26_o and_o those_o that_o say_v to_o god_n depart_v from_o we_o we_o desire_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o thy_o way_n job_n 21.14_o these_o instance_n do_v not_o at_o all_o prove_v that_o those_o gentile_n which_o obey_v the_o law_n of_o god_n want_v a_o surable_a disposition_n to_o it_o for_o this_o be_v in_o the_o rebellious_a state_n that_o they_o say_v depart_v from_o we_o and_o like_v not_o to_o retain_v god_n in_o their_o knowledge_n howbeit_o this_o prove_v against_o our_o opposet_n first_o that_o some_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v afford_v even_o they_o that_o like_v not_o to_o retain_v it_o and_o second_o that_o god_n be_v nigh_o they_o that_o say_v to_o he_o depart_v from_o we_o and_o that_o also_o he_o will_v have_v afford_v they_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o way_n and_o also_o it_o be_v
evident_a that_o they_o be_v trouble_v condemn_a and_o reprove_v by_o his_o witness_n in_o their_o conscience_n or_o else_o how_o shall_v they_o say_v depart_v from_o we_o if_o he_o never_o come_v nigh_o they_o nor_o ever_o touch_v their_o conscience_n or_o why_o shall_v they_o say_v we_o desire_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o thy_o way_n if_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o be_v not_o tender_v to_o they_o and_o further_o if_o so_o be_v that_o the_o gentile_n as_o confess_v be_v those_o in_o who_o that_o which_o may_v be_v know_v of_o god_n be_v manifest_v and_o show_v unto_o they_o from_o the_o creation_n to_o the_o be_v of_o god_n and_o his_o eternal_a power_n which_o discovery_n do_v leave_v they_o without_o excuse_n what_o be_v it_o that_o bring_v they_o to_o this_o understanding_n of_o the_o eternal_a power_n and_o godhead_n from_o and_o through_o the_o creation_n be_v it_o spiritual_a yea_o or_o nay_o sure_o this_o clear_a sight_n and_o discovery_n in_o they_o do_v rise_v from_o that_o which_o may_v be_v know_v of_o god_n that_o be_v manifest_a in_o they_o and_o if_o this_o have_v not_o a_o sufficiency_n in_o it_o to_o save_v how_o be_v they_o leave_v without_o excuse_n sure_o the_o fault_n be_v not_o to_o be_v lay_v upon_o god_n nor_o on_o his_o light_n in_o they_o but_o to_o and_o upon_o themselves_o for_o disobey_v it_o and_o not_o like_v to_o retain_v he_o in_o their_o knowledge_n and_o see_v christ_n be_v confess_v page_n 63._o to_o be_v set_v for_o a_o light_n to_o the_o gentile_n isa._n 49.6_o which_o say_v t._n d._n be_v but_o a_o prophecy_n of_o the_o gentile_n mercy_n in_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n actual_a exhibition_n in_o the_o flesh._n however_o this_o mercy_n be_v of_o a_o large_a extent_n and_o for_o ever_o to_o be_v prize_v as_o in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n it_o be_v more_o manifest_a than_o before_o and_o now_o especial_o since_o it_o be_v thus_o open_o declare_v and_o manifest_v it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v thus_o oppose_v and_o slight_v by_o man_n of_o corrupt_a mind_n which_o affirm_v it_o be_v a_o error_n to_o say_v that_o christ_n enlighten_v ever_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o at_o length_n be_v force_v to_o confess_v it_o as_o in_o these_o word_n viz._n that_o it_o be_v supernatural_a the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o messiah_n etc._n etc._n and_o thus_o they_o be_v confound_v and_o break_v to_o piece_n and_o their_o wisdom_n turn_v backward_o by_o this_o convince_a light_n this_o stumble_a stone_n this_o rock_n of_o offence_n which_o they_o can_v avoid_v stumble_v at_o and_o fall_v upon_o and_o break_v to_o piece_n who_o set_v themselves_o against_o it_o and_o bring_v forth_o their_o vain_a imagination_n to_o eclipse_v its_o glory_n as_o too_o many_o of_o this_o generation_n have_v do_v and_o now_o touch_v the_o scripture_n be_v a_o declaration_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n scripture_n but_o not_o the_o word_n nor_o the_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o life_n which_o t._n d._n set_v down_o as_o a_o error_n wherein_o he_o have_v no_o less_o than_o accuse_v the_o scripture_n themselves_o with_o be_v error_n for_o first_o we_o in_o call_v they_o a_o true_a declaration_n we_o call_v they_o what_o they_o call_v themselves_o luke_n 1._o as_o also_o that_o they_o be_v write_n give_v forth_o by_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n and_o that_o which_o they_o call_v the_o word_n we_o do_v also_o the_o word_n be_v in_o the_o begin_n with_o god_n john_n 1._o and_o his_o name_n be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o both_o the_o doctrinal_a part_n and_o historical_a part_n of_o the_o scripture_n contain_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n we_o own_o and_o never_o slight_v nor_o deny_v yet_o if_o we_o shall_v look_v upon_o they_o as_o the_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o life_n this_o will_v exclude_v the_o rule_n and_o guidance_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o the_o only_a rule_n must_v be_v infallible_a certain_a incorruptible_a obvious_a etc._n etc._n which_o lead_v into_o all_o truth_n as_o either_o not_o sufficient_a so_o to_o guide_v or_o not_o to_o be_v own_v as_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o obedience_n to_o god_n etc._n etc._n and_o this_o will_v be_v contrary_a to_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n concern_v it_o who_o follow_v it_o and_o direct_v other_o to_o it_o and_o to_o walk_v in_o this_o spirit_n and_o therein_o they_o know_v their_o several_a attainment_n and_o measure_n and_o herein_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o new_a creature_n who_o worship_v not_o in_o the_o oldness_n of_o the_o letter_n but_o in_o the_o newness_n of_o the_o spirit_n rom._n 7.6_o 2_o cor._n 10.13_o 14_o 15._o phil._n 3.15_o 16._o gal._n 6.15_o 16._o and_o we_o know_v that_o without_o the_o guidance_n of_o this_o spirit_n of_o truth_n man_n can_v never_o come_v to_o a_o right_a judgement_n nor_o understanding_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o how_o then_o do_v t._n d._n go_v to_o prove_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n and_o the_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o life_n whilst_o he_o have_v grant_v that_o to_o bring_v a_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n concern_v itself_o be_v petitio_fw-la principii_fw-la a_o beg_v the_o question_n and_o be_v insignificant_a for_o their_o conviction_n which_o deny_v its_o divine_a authority_n what_o course_n then_o will_v he_o take_v to_o convince_v such_o see_v he_o himself_o do_v but_o follow_v his_o notion_n conceiving_n and_o humane_a understanding_n while_o divine_a revelation_n and_o immediate_a inspiration_n be_v lay_v aside_o and_o oppose_v in_o these_o day_n by_o such_o as_o he_o pag._n 65._o he_o say_v he_o will_v give_v a_o taste_n of_o our_o argument_n and_o leave_v our_o tenant_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o understanding_n etc._n etc._n what_o understanding_n and_o what_o judgement_n must_v be_v the_o guide_n and_o rule_n of_o man_n judgement_n and_o undertanding_n if_o the_o light_n within_o must_v not_o be_v the_o rule_n for_o after_o he_o have_v assert_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n present_o he_o have_v put_v himself_o upon_o a_o hanck_n and_o shake_v his_o own_o foundation_n in_o confess_v the_o scripture_n insufficient_a for_o the_o conviction_n of_o such_o who_o deny_v its_o divine_a authority_n otherwise_o it_o be_v but_o a_o beg_a the_o question_n to_o go_v to_o prove_v the_o scripture_n by_o themselves_o and_o now_o what_o he_o will_v erect_v as_o a_o rule_n instead_o thereof_o for_o the_o conviction_n of_o such_o whilst_o he_o have_v oppose_v the_o light_n within_o and_o assert_v the_o insufficience_n of_o the_o scripture_n show_v they_o not_o to_o be_v the_o only_a rule_n be_v questionable_a whether_o he_o know_v himself_o if_o he_o do_v let_v he_o tell_v it_o to_o they_o that_o desire_v it_o and_o pag._n 66._o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v one_o while_o he_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o understanding_n another_o while_o the_o matter_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n before_o it_o be_v commit_v in_o writing_n and_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v to_o adam_n and_o again_o when_o they_o affirm_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o only_a rule_n its_o intend_a to_o they_o who_o have_v the_o scripture_n and_o not_o to_o they_o that_o have_v they_o not_o pag._n 67._o and_o present_o after_o we_o must_v understand_v this_o point_n with_o connexion_n with_o the_o former_a the_o light_n within_o so_o do_v but_o mark_v what_o confusion_n here_o be_v first_o it_o be_v his_o own_o confession_n that_o the_o matter_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v before_o it_o be_v write_v second_o that_o to_o they_o who_o have_v not_o the_o scripture_n something_o must_v be_v the_o rule_n and_o what_o be_v it_o the_o light_n within_o have_v no_o other_o way_n as_o he_o say_v now_o if_o the_o light_n within_o and_o the_o matter_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o sufficient_a rule_n to_o they_o which_o have_v they_o not_o in_o the_o write_n sure_o its_o sufficiency_n be_v not_o diminish_v by_o the_o writing_n but_o rather_o testify_v unto_o neither_o be_v it_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o draw_v people_n from_o either_o the_o matter_n or_o light_v within_o which_o open_v they_o nor_o to_o set_v up_o scripture_n as_o the_o only_a rule_n instead_o thereof_o but_o than_o say_v t._n d._n that_o very_a scripture_n rom._n 10.8_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o light_n within_o but_o of_o the_o scripture_n answ._n it_o speak_v of_o the_o very_a same_o word_n which_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o which_o be_v before_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v in_o moses_n time_n much_o of_o they_o be_v unwritten_a and_o yet_o he_o direct_v the_o people_n to_o
the_o word_n and_o the_o apostle_n call_v it_o the_o word_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v nigh_o they_o in_o their_o mouth_n and_o in_o their_o heart_n but_o say_v t._n d._n it_o be_v not_o the_o light_n within_o but_o the_o scripture_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v in_o their_o mouth_n and_o heart_n but_o this_o word_n of_o which_o they_o give_v testimony_n be_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n that_o give_v forth_o the_o scripture_n before_o they_o write_v they_o and_o it_o be_v a_o lamp_n to_o david_n foot_n and_o a_o light_n to_o his_o path_n and_o he_o hide_v it_o in_o his_o heart_n that_o he_o may_v not_o sin_v etc._n etc._n psal._n 119.11_o &_o verse_n 115._o and_o the_o word_n be_v for_o ever_o settle_v in_o heaven_n verse_n 89._o this_o be_v that_o which_o quicken_v sanctify_v and_o save_v the_o righteous_a in_o and_o through_o all_o generation_n and_o of_o this_o the_o scripture_n or_o write_n do_v testify_v in_o which_o be_v word_n of_o god_n but_o the_o word_n be_v before_o they_o be_v speak_v or_o write_v and_o t._n d.'s_n accuse_v the_o quaker_n for_o not_o own_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v false_a for_o we_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n that_o give_v forth_o and_o open_v and_o bring_v to_o the_o right_a use_n and_o end_n of_o they_o and_o in_o the_o same_o spirit_n can_v and_o do_v make_v use_n of_o they_o not_o only_o to_o prove_v our_o tenant_n and_o to_o confute_v our_o opposer_n but_o also_o to_o obey_v and_o practise_v the_o thing_n contain_v in_o they_o which_o be_v true_o moral_a and_o christian_n as_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n do_v direct_a and_o enable_v t._n d._n we_o be_v not_o now_o to_o expect_v any_o new_a discovery_n of_o truth_n as_o to_o the_o matter_n reveal_v but_o only_o as_o to_o the_o person_n who_o god_n enlighten_v gradual_o to_o discern_v the_o evidence_n of_o what_o be_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n answ._n first_o if_o no_o new_a discovery_n than_o what_o be_v in_o scripture_n then_o no_o need_n of_o popish_a and_o heathenish_a author_n to_o prove_v distinct_a and_o separate_a personal_a subsistance_n in_o god_n nor_o any_o other_o such_o traditional_a distinction_n which_o obscure_v the_o simplicity_n of_o scripture_n truth_n and_o darken_v the_o mind_n of_o people_n but_o people_n shall_v rather_o be_v refer_v single_o to_o the_o scripture_n phrase_n and_o language_n and_o to_o search_v they_o in_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n within_o second_o if_o the_o discern_a of_o the_o scripture_n be_v from_o god_n enlighten_v they_o people_n ought_v to_o be_v recommend_v to_o god_n to_o wait_v in_o his_o light_n to_o know_v his_o counsel_n and_o direction_n therein_o or_o otherwise_o they_o will_v remain_v ignorant_a of_o the_o scripture_n and_o revelation_n of_o the_o thing_n declare_v again_o it_o be_v well_o that_o t._n d._n confess_v that_o there_o be_v prophecy_n and_o history_n of_o thing_n do_v before_o the_o penman_n birth_n as_o also_o personal_a experience_n etc._n etc._n so_o now_o at_o length_n he_o do_v a_o little_a assent_n to_o truth_n as_o if_o he_o be_v a_o little_a convince_v by_o s._n fisher_n answer_n to_o he_o that_o he_o do_v not_o now_o bind_v up_o all_o to_o the_o scripture_n but_o confess_v that_o prophecy_n history_n and_o personal_a experience_n to_o be_v before_o the_o penman_n birth_n but_o herein_o he_o have_v but_o manifest_v his_o uncertainty_n and_o waver_v to_o and_o again_o one_o while_o oppose_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o light_n and_o place_v all_o upon_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o only_a rule_n another_o while_n upon_o the_o matter_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v before_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v and_o be_v write_v on_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o gentile_n another_o while_o the_o light_n within_o he_o seem_v to_o assent_v unto_o as_o in_o pag._n 67._o for_o they_o that_o have_v not_o scripture_n another_o while_n prophecy_n and_o experience_n where_o before_o the_o scripture_n and_o thus_o at_o length_n the_o spirit_n or_o light_n that_o give_v forth_o the_o scripture_n must_v be_v prefer_v as_o the_o most_o certain_a and_o universal_a guide_n and_o rule_n as_o indeed_o it_o be_v to_o all_o they_o who_o follow_v obey_v and_o believe_v in_o it_o and_o this_o light_a the_o blind_a corrupt_a imaginary_a teacher_n who_o knowledge_n and_o profession_n be_v but_o natural_a and_o traditional_a can_v corrupt_v as_o they_o have_v do_v the_o scripture_n by_o their_o false_a gloss_n meaning_n and_o private_a interpretation_n contrary_a to_o the_o intent_n and_o end_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o give_v they_o forth_o and_o which_o lead_v into_o all_o truth_n and_o righteousness_n for_o a_o further_a answer_n to_o t._n d._n touch_v this_o matter_n i_o do_v refer_v the_o reader_n to_o s._n fisher_n book_n title_v rusticus_n ad_fw-la accademicos_fw-la and_o as_o for_o his_o accuse_a quaker_n with_o error_n touch_v baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n supper_n as_o to_o their_o cease_n and_o set_v up_o the_o appearance_n of_o christ_n within_o etc._n etc._n answ._n the_o one_o baptism_n ephes._n 4.5_o into_o the_o one_o body_n 1_o cor._n 12.13_o and_o the_o eat_n drink_v and_o sup_v with_o christ_n at_o the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o house_n and_o kingdom_n we_o own_o and_o experience_n but_o what_o baptism_n it_o be_v he_o intend_v whether_o sprinkle_v infant_n or_o john_n baptism_n he_o have_v not_o discover_v neither_o indeed_o do_v it_o concern_v he_o now_o to_o make_v such_o a_o frivolous_a pother_n against_o the_o quaker_n upon_o this_o account_n for_o indeed_o we_o do_v not_o look_v upon_o he_o either_o as_o a_o true_a minister_n nor_o as_o have_v a_o call_n either_o from_o god_n or_o man_n as_o one_o impower_v to_o impose_v thing_n he_o call_v ordinance_n its_o probable_a when_o he_o be_v parish_n priest_n at_o sandwich_n in_o kent_n in_o cromwel_n time_n he_o can_v show_v a_o great_a force_n for_o his_o imposition_n then_o now_o he_o can_v in_o house_n and_o corner_n where_o he_o and_o his_o brethren_n can_v creep_v and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o be_v ready_a to_o obscure_v and_o hide_v themselves_o if_o but_o a_o little_a storm_n and_o trial_n come_v he_o style_v himself_o sometime_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n at_o sandwich_n sandwich_n but_o be_v not_o rather_o that_o report_v of_o he_o true_a that_o there_o he_o be_v give_v to_o game_n bowl_n and_o ninepin_n &_o c_o but_o as_o to_o the_o appearance_n and_o enjoyment_n of_o christ_n within_o we_o do_v confess_v he_o to_o be_v the_o substance_n and_o the_o live_a bread_n and_o in_o he_o we_o be_v keep_v not_o only_o in_o a_o live_a remembrance_n but_o also_o in_o a_o real_a possession_n of_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n of_o his_o life_n have_v know_v a_o conformity_n to_o his_o death_n which_o be_v more_o than_o a_o remembrance_n of_o it_o and_o we_o know_v he_o to_o be_v the_o endure_a divine_a substance_n which_o end_v all_o type_n shadow_n and_o figure_n and_o his_o come_v and_o appearance_n in_o the_o flesh_n wherein_o he_o go_v through_o the_o type_n and_o shadow_n as_o circumcision_n john_n baptism_n observe_v the_o passover_n at_o his_o supper_n and_o his_o suffering_n do_v make_v way_n for_o his_o come_n in_o the_o spirit_n as_o he_o consecrate_v a_o new_a and_o live_a way_n through_o the_o veil_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o flesh_n now_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n until_o which_o his_o dispiple_n be_v to_o show_v forth_o his_o death_n in_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o figure_n this_o come_n they_o do_v not_o put_v afar_o off_o as_o our_o opposer_n yet_o do_v how_o long_o they_o know_v not_o it_o be_v already_o above_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n since_o and_o yet_o this_o his_o come_n be_v still_o put_v off_o whereas_o the_o disciple_n after_o they_o be_v with_o christ_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n be_v witness_n of_o his_o come_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o also_o of_o his_o spiritual_a come_v and_o revelation_n in_o their_o heart_n and_o now_o to_o suppose_v that_o what_o the_o disciple_n do_v to_o show_v his_o death_n be_v till_o a_o three_o come_v not_o yet_o manifest_a be_v to_o overlook_v the_o two_o former_a as_o no_o come_n as_o also_o to_o render_v christ_n own_o word_n and_o promise_v ineffectual_a who_o say_v very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o there_o be_v some_o stand_n here_o which_o shall_v not_o taste_v of_o death_n till_o they_o see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v in_o his_o kingdom_n matth._n 16.28_o mark_v 9_o luke_n 9.27_o and_o as_o to_o 1_o cor._n 11.23_o 24_o 25._o wherein_o the_o apostle_n repeat_v what_o christ_n do_v the_o same_o night_n he_o be_v betray_v in_o give_v the_o bread_n and_o cup_n
to_o show_v his_o death_n till_o he_o come_v etc._n etc._n however_o t._n d._n construe_v this_o it_o do_v not_o prove_v the_o figurative_a or_o outward_a part_n or_o sign_n to_o be_v impose_v as_o of_o absolute_a necessity_n upon_o all_o believer_n till_o some_o other_o come_v of_o christ_n not_o yet_o come_v for_o his_o come_n in_o the_o spirit_n t._n d._n own_v not_o to_o be_v the_o end_n thereof_o but_o where_o then_o be_v the_o mystery_n and_o inward_a and_o spiritual_a grace_n signify_v by_o the_o outward_a sign_n so_o much_o talk_v of_o in_o your_o catechism_n but_o its_o evident_a t._n d._n be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o his_o blood_n which_o the_o outward_a bread_n and_o cup_n be_v but_o the_o sign_n and_o figure_n of_o we_o oppose_v the_o popish_a opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o however_o as_o to_o the_o corinthian_n at_o that_o time_n among_o they_o there_o be_v strife_n and_o division_n contention_n and_o disorder_n one_o be_v hungry_a another_o drink_v another_o asleep_z one_o be_v of_o paul_n another_o of_o apollo_n another_o of_o cephas_n which_o the_o apostle_n reprove_v therein_o as_o be_v carnal_a walk_v as_o man_n so_o that_o he_o can_v not_o speak_v unto_o they_o as_o unto_o spiritual_a but_o as_o unto_o carnal_a 1_o cor._n 3.11_o 16_o 17_o 18_o 20_o 21_o 30._o now_o supose_v that_o wherein_o the_o apostle_n may_v or_o do_v condescend_v to_o their_o low_a capacity_n as_o not_o grow_v to_o that_o spirituallity_n so_o as_o to_o see_v through_o the_o outward_a shadow_n this_o their_o example_n be_v not_o to_o be_v a_o precedent_n not_o can_v it_o in_o reason_n or_o truth_n be_v enjoin_v to_o all_o other_o that_o succeed_v who_o be_v come_v true_o to_o know_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n appearance_n in_o spirit_n and_o spiritual_o to_o enjoy_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n where_o none_o of_o these_o disorder_n aforesaid_a have_v any_o place_n now_o paul_n in_o his_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n chap._n 13.15_o bid_v they_o examine_v and_o prove_v themselves_o say_v know_v you_o not_o your_o own_o self_n how_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o you_o except_o you_o be_v reprobate_n so_o here_o be_v the_o bread_n he_o then_o refer_v they_o to_o which_o indeed_o be_v always_o the_o intent_n and_o end_n of_o his_o labour_n and_o travel_v to_o bring_v those_o that_o be_v weak_a to_o a_o live_n and_o spiritual_a sense_n even_o of_o this_o spiritual_a bread_n however_o because_o of_o their_o weakness_n and_o low_a capacity_n he_o may_v condescend_v unto_o they_o as_o in_o some_o thing_n he_o do_v and_o whereas_o t._n d._n plead_v for_o his_o ordinance_n as_o before_o sai_z pag._n 72._o they_o do_v not_o cease_v as_o to_o our_o need_n of_o they_o because_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v suppose_v consistant_fw-la with_o christ_n wisdom_n to_o continue_v a_o obligation_n upon_o we_o to_o the_o use_n of_o a_o mean_n when_o the_o end_n be_v obtain_v viz_o the_o appearance_n of_o christ_n within_o that_o be_v a_o full_a appearance_n or_o state_n of_o perfection_n say_v he_o but_o we_o have_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o state_n attainable_a in_o this_o life_n then_o if_o those_o ordinance_n oblige_v till_o we_o be_v arrive_v at_o perfection_n they_o oblige_v and_o so_o be_v of_o use_n during_o term_n of_o life_n answ._n where_o observe_v first_o however_o he_o have_v grant_v that_o they_o be_v not_o oblige_v where_o the_o end_n be_v attain_v or_o not_o continue_v by_o christ_n as_o a_o obligation_n where_o this_o his_o appearance_n be_v witness_v which_o bring_v to_o a_o state_n of_o perfection_n second_o t._n d._n have_v not_o prove_v that_o such_o a_o state_n be_v not_o attainable_a on_o this_o side_n the_o grave_a but_o the_o contrary_n be_v prove_v before_o against_o he_o and_o all_o his_o brethren_n sinful_a plea_n doctrine_n and_o argument_n for_o sin_n and_o imperfection_n in_o this_o life_n therefore_o this_o spiritual_a appearance_n of_o christ_n bring_v man_n beyond_o all_o man_n tradition_n and_o outward_a ordinance_n so_o call_v and_o indeed_o who_o do_v know_v a_o beginning_n in_o the_o spirit_n ought_v to_o wait_v for_o this_o spiritual_a appearance_n and_o come_v of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n be_v direction_n which_o be_v most_o perfect_a and_o not_o to_o turn_v back_o again_o into_o the_o type_n shadow_n and_o figure_n nor_o into_o the_o weak_a and_o beggarly_a element_n of_o the_o world_n chapter_n nor_o yet_o subject_a themselves_o to_o man_n tradition_n carnal_a commandment_n impose_v doctrine_n and_o precept_n but_o to_o wait_v upon_o god_n in_o spirit_n to_o serve_v and_o worship_v he_o in_o the_o newness_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o thereby_o they_o may_v know_v the_o spiritual_a wash_v the_o baptism_n into_o christ_n death_n and_o be_v baptise_a by_o the_o one_o spirit_n into_o one_o body_n and_o so_o come_v into_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o to_o feed_v at_o his_o table_n and_o partake_v of_o the_o live_a bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o to_o drink_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n with_o christ_n in_o his_o father_n kingdom_n which_o kingdom_n he_o promise_v to_o his_o disciple_n shall_v come_v with_o power_n even_o in_o their_o age_n or_o before_o some_o of_o they_o that_o stand_v by_o shall_v taste_v of_o death_n mark_v 9.1_o luke_n 9.27_o and_o as_o for_o t._n d_n saying_n the_o apostle_n call_v the_o doctrine_n of_o baptism_n a_o foundation_n these_o be_v not_o the_o apostle_n word_n neither_o do_v he_o teach_v sprinkle_v infant_n for_o say_v he_o but_o leave_v the_o principle_n or_o begin_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n let_v we_o go_v on_o unto_o perfection_n not_o lay_v again_o the_o foundation_n of_o repentance_n from_o dead_a work_n and_o of_o faith_n towards_o god_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o baptism_n etc._n etc._n now_o if_o perfection_n which_o be_v the_o end_n of_o those_o baptism_n be_v the_o thing_n they_o be_v to_o go_v on_o unto_o as_o he_o exhort_v sure_o than_o it_o be_v attainable_a for_o the_o apostle_n exhortation_n be_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o do_v not_o oppose_v perfection_n as_o t._n d._n erroneous_o have_v do_v but_o direct_v and_o lead_v they_o forward_o out_o off_o and_o beyond_o the_o shadow_n and_o figure_n unto_o the_o substance_n and_o preach_v to_o present_a man_n perfect_a in_o christ._n and_o whereas_o t._n d._n have_v charge_v we_o yet_o further_o with_o a_o great_a error_n resurrection_n which_o be_v that_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o to_o prove_v we_o guilty_a hereof_o he_o mention_v a_o letter_n of_o one_o r._n turner_n which_o letter_n i_o have_v not_o see_v nor_o do_v i_o know_v the_o man_n as_o also_o g._n w._n in_o his_o late_a answer_n to_o william_n burnet_n and_o g._n f._n junior_a in_o his_o book_n bind_v up_o together_o answ._n how_o apparent_o t._n d._n have_v belie_v slander_v and_o abuse_v we_o in_o accuse_v so_o positive_o that_o we_o hold_v there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a be_v evident_a in_o many_o print_a book_n of_o we_o and_o he_o have_v neither_o mention_v my_o word_n nor_o g._n f_n i_o say_v his_o slander_n and_o false_a accusation_n herein_o against_o i_o in_o particular_a may_v be_v plain_o detect_v out_o of_o that_o very_a book_n of_o my_o own_o wherein_o pag._n 67._o i_o have_v express_v these_o very_a word_n but_o the_o resurrection_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n and_o testimony_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n we_o do_v believe_v and_o own_v as_o record_v in_o john_n 5.21_o 24_o 25_o 28_o 29._o and_o chap._n 11.25_o matth._n 22.30_o 31_o 32._o 1_o cor._n 15.34_o 35_o 36_o 37_o 38._o and_o so_o on_o 2_o cor._n 5.1_o many_o other_o place_n may_v be_v cite_v these_o very_a word_n and_o scripture_n be_v thus_o set_v down_o in_o my_o answer_n to_o william_n burnet_n after_o which_o be_v some_o passage_n of_o a_o dispute_v i_o have_v upon_o the_o same_o subject_n with_o that_o busy_a yet_o sorry_a contend_v matthew_n caffin_n the_o baptist_n who_o impertinency_n and_o ignorance_n at_o the_o dispute_n be_v full_o manifest_v as_o other_o of_o his_o brethren_n have_n be_v when_o they_o have_v appear_v in_o the_o same_o unprofitable_a work_n against_o we_o and_o as_o concern_v what_o g._n f._n the_o young_a say_v in_o his_o book_n collect_v clear_v he_o also_o from_o t._n danson_n impudent_a slander_n of_o hold_v there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a for_o g._n f._n affirm_v the_o contrary_a in_o pag._n 209_o 210._o in_o these_o very_a word_n touch_v the_o resurrection_n it_o be_v a_o mystery_n which_o the_o carnal_a mind_n can_v never_o comprehend_v
be_v make_v a_o offer_n for_o sin_n he_o have_v offer_v himself_o through_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n yet_o his_o soul_n or_o spirit_n do_v not_o die_v paradise_n with_o the_o body_n though_o j._n o._n have_v ignorant_o make_v no_o distinction_n but_o join_v both_o as_o be_v but_o humane_a nature_n which_o be_v sacrifice_v to_o death_n but_o yet_o its_o evident_a that_o though_o his_o soul_n and_o spirit_n do_v not_o die_v with_o the_o body_n yet_o his_o soul_n be_v offer_v for_o sin_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n be_v lay_v upon_o he_o or_o do_v meet_v on_o he_o as_o be_v frequent_o confess_v and_o so_o he_o suffer_v and_o his_o soul_n travel_v under_o the_o burden_n of_o they_o so_o that_o his_o suffering_n be_v twofold_a both_o inward_a and_o outward_a and_o which_o be_v the_o great_a suppose_v you_o professor_n miserable_a and_o whether_o there_o be_v not_o a_o mystery_n to_o be_v know_v in_o the_o suffering_n death_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n beyond_o what_o can_v be_v see_v or_o perceive_v with_o the_o carnal_a or_o outward_a eye_n since_o that_o he_o be_v true_o and_o save_o to_o be_v know_v after_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o apostle_n know_v he_o who_o experience_v the_o fellowship_n of_o his_o suffering_n and_o a_o conformity_n unto_o his_o death_n and_o bare_a in_o their_o body_n the_o die_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n that_o his_o life_n may_v be_v manifest_a in_o they_o and_o christ_n be_v touch_v with_o the_o feel_n of_o their_o infirmity_n be_v able_a to_o relieve_v they_o that_o be_v tempt_v and_o as_o paul_n say_v colos._n 1_o you_o that_o be_v sometime_o alienate_v and_o enemy_n in_o your_o mind_n through_o wicked_a work_n yet_o now_o have_v he_o reconcile_v in_o the_o body_n of_o his_o flesh_n through_o death_n to_o present_v you_o holy_a and_o unblameable_a and_o unreprovable_a in_o his_o sight_n if_o you_o continue_v in_o the_o faith_n ground_v and_o settle_v and_o be_v not_o move_v away_o from_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o you_o have_v hear_v which_o be_v preach_v to_o every_o creature_n which_o be_v under_o heaven_n whereof_o i_o paul_n be_o make_v a_o minister_n who_o now_o rejoice_v in_o my_o suffering_n for_o you_o and_o fill_v up_o that_o which_o be_v behind_o of_o the_o affliction_n of_o christ_n in_o my_o flesh_n for_o his_o body_n sake_n which_o be_v the_o church_n verse_n 21_o 22_o 23_o 24._o where_o mark_v that_o the_o reconcile_a state_n be_v not_o that_o of_o enmity_n in_o their_o mind_n and_o the_o end_n of_o this_o reconciliation_n through_o his_o death_n be_v to_o present_v they_o holy_a and_o unblameable_a and_o unreprovable_a in_o his_o sight_n which_o do_v not_o admit_v of_o sin_n and_o imperfection_n term_v of_o life_n nor_o yet_o of_o professor_n argue_v or_o plead_v for_o sin_n as_o they_o do_v and_o be_v there_o any_o of_o christ_n affliction_n or_o suffering_n then_o to_o be_v fill_v up_o in_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o his_o church_n how_o do_v professor_n resent_v this_o doctrine_n and_o what_o meaning_n will_v they_o give_v to_o it_o can_v they_o say_v that_o christ_n suffering_n be_v all_o at_o a_o end_n or_o fulfil_v at_o once_o while_o yet_o some_o be_v behind_o to_o be_v fill_v up_o in_o his_o saint_n and_o that_o for_o his_o church_n sake_n although_o still_o he_o be_v the_o one_o offer_v ransom_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n and_o be_v offer_v once_o for_o all_o as_o both_o be_v oppose_v to_o and_o end_v the_o many_o offering_n under_o the_o law_n and_o consecrate_v a_o new_a and_o live_a way_n and_o establish_v a_o everlasting_a covenant_n of_o life_n and_o salvation_n as_o also_o that_o in_o what_o he_o do_v and_o suffer_v be_v set_v we_o a_o example_n bare_a testimony_n unto_o and_o confirm_v the_o truth_n this_o j._n o._n confess_v page_n 199._o and_o as_o to_o his_o be_v a_o perfect_a high_a priest_n and_o discharge_v the_o office_n thereof_o and_o all_o other_o the_o father_n require_v of_o he_o these_o we_o never_o oppose_v nor_o go_v about_o to_o slight_a or_o lessen_v as_o some_o injurious_o represent_v we_o neither_o will_v we_o have_v any_o unreverent_a and_o slighty_a contest_v entertain_v on_o any_o hand_n about_o the_o suffering_n affliction_n and_o death_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o least_o to_o lessen_v or_o undervalue_v they_o nor_o yet_o ought_v you_o to_o meddle_v and_o tamper_v about_o either_o god_n christ_n or_o holy_a spirit_n or_o about_o the_o suffer_a and_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n with_o your_o pitiful_a sorry_a confuse_a school-term_n and_o distinction_n and_o beggarly_a scrap_n of_o man_n tradition_n and_o rudiment_n of_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n wherein_o you_o have_v labour_v more_o to_o fill_v your_o head_n with_o airy_a notion_n invent_v word_n and_o brain_n knowledge_n rather_o than_o your_o heart_n and_o soul_n with_o a_o save_a knowledge_n and_o experimental_a sense_n and_o feel_n of_o the_o life_n and_o power_n of_o godliness_n or_o of_o the_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n of_o christ_n jesus_n and_o his_o reconciliation_n as_o the_o one_o offer_v and_o sacrifice_n which_o put_v away_o sin_n and_o who_o blood_n both_o remit_v and_o cleanse_v from_o all_o iniquity_n but_o to_o evade_v these_o bless_a effect_n which_o be_v only_o know_v to_o they_o that_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n 1_o john_n 1.7_o many_o of_o you_o professor_n have_v find_v out_o a_o very_a easy_a way_n and_o notion_n of_o all_o be_v full_o satisfy_v and_o pay_v for_o you_o both_o for_o sin_n past_a present_a and_o to_o come_v and_o of_o all_o be_v suffer_v and_o perfect_o obey_v for_o you_o by_o christ_n in_o your_o stead_n though_o you_o deny_v his_o die_a and_o be_v a_o propitiation_n for_o all_o man_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n so_o that_o you_o can_v plead_v and_o wrangle_v for_o sin_n imperfection_n and_o body_n of_o sin_n all_o your_o life_n and_o say_v christ_n have_v full_o pay_v all_o and_o perfect_o obey_v for_o you_o as_o also_o you_o can_v easy_o evade_v or_o refuse_v to_o suffer_v either_o with_o he_o or_o for_o he_o if_o but_o a_o little_a storm_n trial_n or_o persecution_n do_v arise_v you_o and_o your_o leader_n can_v secure_v yourselves_o and_o creep_v into_o corner_n though_o now_o you_o can_v make_v a_o show_n and_o bluster_v in_o this_o time_n of_o calm_a and_o some_o of_o you_o make_v a_o boast_n and_o insult_v against_o w._n p._n and_o a_o hideous_a revile_v of_o he_o now_o he_o be_v in_o suffering_n and_o you_o at_o liberty_n think_v probable_o that_o you_o may_v get_v yourselves_o some_o credit_n and_o repute_v with_o those_o in_o power_n by_o your_o rail_a pamphlet_n which_o you_o bring_v out_o one_o after_o another_o like_o cowardly_a base_a spirit_a man_n so_o many_o to_o go_v to_o trample_v upon_o a_o man_n that_o be_v already_o underfoot_o as_o to_o the_o outward_a man_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o confinement_n which_o some_o report_n that_o some_o of_o you_o presbyterian_o be_v the_o instigator_n and_o occasion_n of_o by_o such_o invective_n clamour_n and_o complaint_n as_o some_o of_o you_o be_v accustom_v to_o clear_v yourselves_o as_o well_o as_o you_o can_v but_o yet_o withal_o you_o do_v but_o befool_v yourselves_o in_o so_o many_o of_o you_o go_v to_o war_n against_o and_o reproach_v a_o poor_a man_n in_o prison_n who_o free_o offer_v up_o himself_o to_o suffer_v which_o the_o most_o of_o you_o will_v be_v loath_a to_o do_v of_o for_o by_o that_o your_o so_o great_a stir_n and_o noise_n you_o make_v against_o he_o you_o render_v he_o how_o mean_a soever_o he_o be_v in_o himself_o such_o a_o potent_a antagonist_n contrary_a to_o your_o many_o slighty_a and_o scornful_a character_n of_o he_o in_o your_o book_n that_o you_o make_v many_o momoderate_a people_n the_o more_o inquire_v after_o he_o and_o to_o have_v the_o better_a conception_n of_o he_o because_o of_o your_o enmity_n and_o outrage_n but_o such_o who_o wait_v upon_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o his_o light_n stand_v still_o can_v see_v beyond_o you_o all_o and_o your_o spirit_n and_o work_n which_o the_o day_n have_v declare_v more_o error_n escape_v the_o press_n in_o the_o epistle_n page_n 2._o line_n 12._o for_o agree_v in_o read_v be_v p._n 23._o l._n 2._o blot_n out_o 1._o l._n 23._o for_o for_o r._n in_o p._n 25._o l._n 10._o r._n produce_v l._n 35._o for_o 13_o r._n 3._o in_o the_o answer_n to_o t._n v._o p._n 65._o l._n 1._o blot_v out_o that_o in_o the_o answer_n to_o t._n d._n p._n 2._o l._n 24._o for_o gift_n r._n gust_n p._n 5._o l._n 18._o for_o in_o r._n on_o p._n 7._o l._n 5._o for_o 13_o r._n 3._o l._n 11._o for_o by_o r._n high_a p._n 9_o l._n 10._o for_o and_o all_o r._n a_o act_n p._n 12._o l._n 2._o for_o he_o r._n the._n p._n 17._o
of_o it_o in_o the_o unregenerate_a state_n not_o come_v to_o know_v the_o image_n of_o god_n renew_v in_o they_o for_o man_n be_v not_o imputed_o righteous_a when_o actual_o sinner_n as_o impious_o have_v be_v assert_v nor_o imputed_o save_v when_o actual_o damn_v no_o more_o than_o imputative_o saint_n while_o actual_o devil_n seven_o neither_o do_v god_n account_v man_n justify_v or_o reckon_v they_o righteous_a whilst_o they_o be_v real_o unjust_a be_v reprove_v and_o judge_v as_o unrighteous_a by_o his_o light_n and_o spirit_n in_o they_o for_o god_n account_n and_o reckon_n be_v true_a and_o righteous_a and_o he_o just_a and_o true_a in_o all_o his_o way_n and_o his_o judgement_n be_v right_o and_o he_o can_v no_o more_o therein_o contradict_v his_o own_o light_n in_o man_n or_o its_o judgement_n and_o testimony_n than_o he_o can_v oppose_v or_o deny_v himself_o eight_o the_o unrighteous_a shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v reveal_v from_o heaven_n against_o all_o ungodliness_n and_o unrighteousness_n of_o man_n they_o that_o be_v or_o continue_v actual_o sinful_a and_o pollute_a be_v neither_o acquit_v nor_o righteous_a in_o god_n account_n but_o must_v bear_v their_o iniquity_n which_o will_v be_v their_o ruin_n unless_o they_o return_v and_o be_v reconcile_v in_o their_o mind_n to_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n within_n which_o reprove_v they_o of_o sin_n and_o evil_n and_o so_o except_o man_n repent_v and_o forsake_v their_o sin_n they_o shall_v sure_o perish_v they_o that_o neglect_v the_o great_a salvation_n can_v escape_v condemnation_n if_o i_o sin_v against_o thou_o than_o thou_o mark_v i_o and_o thou_o will_v not_o acquit_v i_o from_o my_o iniquity_n job_n 10.14_o psal._n 32._o god_n impute_v sin_n to_o none_o but_o they_o in_o who_o it_o be_v in_o be_v so_o he_o impute_v nor_o righteousness_n to_o any_o but_o they_o in_o who_o it_o be_v as_o the_o bless_a man_n to_o who_o god_n impute_v not_o sin_n etc._n etc._n in_o his_o spirit_n there_o be_v no_o guile_n final_o all_o that_o profess_v to_o be_v minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o teacher_n of_o other_o ought_v to_o preach_v or_o teach_v nothing_o but_o what_o may_v make_v or_o tend_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o honour_n of_o christ_n jesus_n in_o the_o exaltation_n of_o truth_n and_o righteousness_n in_o the_o earth_n and_o all_o the_o contrary_a as_o all_o sin_n and_o sinful_a doctrine_n with_o all_o sin-pleasing_a and_o sinners-soothing_a principle_n to_o be_v abhor_v reject_v and_o oppose_v by_o all_o profess_v christianity_n that_o tender_v the_o honour_n of_o christ_n and_o desire_v the_o exaltation_n of_o his_o kingdom_n which_o stand_v in_o righteousness_n t.u._n his_o contradiction_n w._n madox_n madox_n christ_n divinity_n own_v own_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o deity_n and_o divinity_n of_o christ_n asserted_n asserted_n a_o poor_a trial_n trial_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n true_o confess_v by_o we_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n but_o these_o priest_n miscalling_a they_o deny_v deny_v see_v our_o opposer_n blasphemous_a distinction_n and_o contradiction_n contradiction_n w._n m'_v rail_a rail_a presbyter_n vain_a &_o profane_a babble_n confusion_n and_o blaspphemous_a work_n work_n contradiction_n contradiction_n the_o pit_n they_o have_v dig_v for_o other_o they_o be_v fall_v into_o themselves_o here_o you_o may_v see_v t.u._n his_o invent_a un-scriptural_a riddle_n riddle_n yet_o in_o contradiction_n they_o other_o while_o state_n it_o as_o a_o act_n of_o law_n and_o contract_n between_o creditor_n and_o surety_n depend_v on_o christ_n as_o a_o second_o person_n but_o in_o contradiction_n again_o it_o be_v as_o god-man_n as_o their_o word_n be_v be_v where_o then_o be_v his_o absolute_a power_n and_o sovereignty_n so_o much_o profess_v confusion_n and_o distraction_n distraction_n for_o a_o life_n in_o sin_n be_v not_o god_n term_n term_n but_o j._n owen_n confess_v otherwise_o that_o god_n require_v faith_n and_o repentance_n in_o sinner_n antecedent_o to_o their_o participation_n of_o pardon_n pardon_n this_o be_v god_n pleasure_n in_o both_o where_o do_v the_o scripture_n call_v it_o his_o vindicative_a justice_n upon_o he_o as_o t._n v_n be_v word_n be_v which_o j._n o._n and_o t._n d._n call_v vindictive_a justice_n but_o by_o what_o scripture_n we_o know_v not_o for_o the_o scripture_n call_v it_o the_o chastisement_n of_o our_o peace_n that_o be_v on_o he_o he_o the_o soul_n that_o he_o have_v make_v his_o justice_n do_v not_o withhold_v pity_n from_o they_o to_o gain_v upon_o they_o heb._n 12.9_o 10_o 11._o 11._o it_o be_v christ_n persecutor_n that_o charge_v or_o impute_a sin_n gild_n and_o blasphemy_n to_o he_o and_o so_o such_o they_o be_v that_o impute_v righteousness_n to_o wicked_a or_o sinful_a person_n t.u._n t.u._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d three_o witness_n page_n 14._o page_n 16._o 16._o here_o they_o deny_v the_o full_a satisfaction_n or_o plenary_a as_o they_o call_v it_o it_o here_o t._n d._n have_v shoot_v at_o we_o in_o the_o devil_n bow_n as_o former_o he_o confess_v he_o do_v do_v but_o man_n in_o the_o fall_a state_n be_v worse_a than_o mere_o a_o debtor_n for_o he_o be_v a_o malefactor_n guilty_a of_o high_a offence_n and_o crime_n against_o the_o pure_a law_n of_o god_n for_o which_o he_o must_v feel_v justice_n in_o the_o ministration_n of_o the_o law_n and_o sentence_n of_o death_n inward_o upon_o the_o transgressor_n before_o he_o receive_v and_o enjoy_v the_o atonement_n ransom_n and_o peace_n with_o god_n god_n though_o god_n be_v always_o well_o please_v and_o satisfy_v in_o christ_n in_o his_o do_v and_o suffer_v and_o as_o he_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n yet_o this_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o we_o to_o profess_v and_o believe_v without_o know_v the_o work_n of_o christ_n and_o effect_v of_o his_o suffering_n and_o righteousness_n within_o and_o his_o spirit_n to_o make_v intercession_n etc._n etc._n rom._n 8._o phil._n 3.9.10_o of_o justication_n to_o justify_v what_o it_o be_v of_o perfection_n of_o the_o light_n within_o of_o the_o scripture_n of_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n supper_n rather_o hireling_n at_o sandwich_n galat._n 3.4_o chapter_n of_o the_o resurrection_n 1_o cor._n 15.35_o 36_o 37_o 38._o pag._n 156_o 157_o and_o 160._o pag._n 163._o and_o 176._o pag._n 178._o and_o 180._o 180._o but_o what_o a_o strange_a instance_n be_v that_o of_o j._n o._n that_o god_n can_v lie_v he_o can_v deny_v himself_o etc._n etc._n to_o prove_v that_o he_o can_v free_o pardon_v sin_n etc._n etc._n pag._n 178._o as_o if_o the_o one_o be_v as_o much_o contrary_n to_o his_o nature_n as_o the_o other_o and_o yet_o upon_o faith_n and_o repentance_n which_o be_v his_o gift_n he_o do_v pardon_v his_o creature_n man_n note_v also_o that_o j._n o._n to_o the_o reader_n say_v of_o his_o author_n that_o many_o of_o they_o do_v express_o blame_v some_o of_o the_o schoolman_n as_o aquinus_n durandus_fw-la biel_n tartaretus_n for_o grant_v a_o possibility_n of_o pardon_n without_o satisfaction_n as_o open_v a_o way_n to_o the_o socinian_n error_n see_v here_o j._n oh_o author_n &_o great_a able_a learned_a defender_n how_o they_o censure_v and_o contradict_v one_o another_o yet_o he_o will_v have_v man_n be_v wary_a how_o they_o censure_v they_o notwithstanding_o notwithstanding_o who_o with_o his_o brethren_n be_v full_o manifest_v and_o confute_v by_o sam._n fisher_n in_o his_o book_n style_v rusticus_n etc._n etc._n never_o yet_o answer_v by_o they_o nor_o like_v to_o be_v be_v for_o it_o be_v commit_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o father_n and_o be_v that_o day_n in_o paradise_n paradise_n whether_o his_o soul_n travel_n and_o suffering_n under_o the_o burden_n of_o man_n transgression_n also_o even_o till_o he_o be_v in_o a_o agony_n or_o his_o body_n suffer_v under_o the_o violence_n of_o the_o wicked_a hand_n to_o death_n and_o the_o shed_n of_o his_o blood_n etc._n etc._n and_o why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o mat._n 27.46_o imply_v a_o deep_a suffering_n for_o sinner_n under_o a_o cloud_n of_o affliction_n yet_o not_o the_o infinite_a wrath_n or_o eternal_a death_n that_o be_v due_a to_o the_o wicked_a who_o reject_v god_n love_n and_o good_a will_n that_o be_v tender_v in_o chirst_n we_o desire_v all_o may_v have_v as_o good_a a_o esteem_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o suffering_n as_o may_v be_v but_o methinks_v you_o professor_n do_v ascribe_v very_o mean_a honour_n to_o christ_n and_o his_o suffering_n who_o therein_o reckon_v he_o not_o innocent_a but_o guilty_a of_o your_o sin_n and_o therefore_o that_o he_o suffer_v the_o same_o vengeance_n or_o vindictive_a justice_n due_a to_o reprobate_n angel_n and_o devil_n be_v this_o the_o dignity_n you_o confer_v upon_o christ_n oh_o miserable_a miserable_a for_o if_o but_o a_o